Selected quad for the lemma: church_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
church_n bishop_n diocesan_n diocese_n 2,722 5 11.0439 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A53662 Tutamen evangelicum, or, A defence of Scripture-ordination, against the exceptions of T.G. in a book intituled, Tentamen novum proving, that ordination by presbyters is valid, Timothy and Titus were no diocesan rulers, the presbyters of Ephesus were the apostles successors in the government of that church, and not Timothy, the first epistle to Timothy was written before the meeting at Miletus, the ancient Waldenses had no diocesan bishops, &c./ by the author of the Plea for Scripture-ordination. Owen, James, 1654-1706. 1697 (1697) Wing O710; ESTC R9488 123,295 224

There are 39 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

why_o not_o by_o john_n also_o i_o appeal_v to_o the_o learned_a reader_n whether_o be_v most_o probable_a that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v allude_v to_o provincial_a angel_n the_o doubtful_a minister_n of_o providence_n under_o that_o denomination_n or_o to_o the_o synagogue-angel_n the_o know_a minister_n of_o sacred_a thing_n 3._o his_o three_o reason_n to_o prove_v that_o timothy_n leave_v a_o episcopal_a successor_n be_v take_v from_o ignatius_n his_o epistle_n to_o that_o church_n 59_o p._n 59_o in_o which_o he_o name_v onesimus_n their_o bishop_n 1._o he_o know_v that_o the_o learned_a be_v not_o agree_v whether_o the_o epistle_n of_o ignatius_n be_v genuine_a or_o no_o mouns_o daille_n have_v write_v a_o learned_a dissertation_n to_o prove_v they_o spurious_a doct._n pearson_n have_v learned_o defend_v they_o le_fw-fr roque_n have_v with_o great_a judgement_n answer_v the_o learned_a bishop_n 2._o if_o ignatius_n be_v genuine_a which_o be_v very_o doubtful_a it_o shall_v seem_v that_o in_o his_o time_n the_o name_n of_o bishop_n which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n give_v to_o all_o presbyter_n in_o common_a begin_v to_o be_v appropriate_v to_o the_o first_o or_o chief_a presbyter_n who_o for_o order_n sake_n preside_v over_o the_o rest_n and_o have_v the_o honour_n of_o the_o chief_a place_n in_o their_o assembly_n and_o of_o moderate_v the_o debate_n of_o the_o presbytery_n but_o without_o any_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n or_o government_n over_o his_o brethren_n this_o be_v the_o primitive_a bishop_n as_o j._n o._n have_v prove_v in_o his_o plea_n p._n 136._o 139._o out_o of_o hilarius_n etc._n etc._n 3._o ignatius_n his_o bishop_n be_v but_o the_o chief_a pastor_n of_o a_o church_n that_o ordinary_o assemble_v together_o for_o personal_a communion_n as_o will_v appear_v to_o any_o impartial_a person_n that_o read_v these_o epistle_n with_o observation_n congregational_a or_o parochial_a bishop_n be_v throughout_o the_o world_n not_o only_o in_o ignatius_n his_o time_n but_o in_o paul_n time_n who_o fix_v more_o than_o one_o of_o they_o in_o every_o church_n act_v 20.28_o phil._n 1.1_o that_o the_o bishop_n diocese_n in_o ignatius_n time_n and_o long_o after_o exceed_v not_o the_o bound_n of_o a_o modern_a parish_n appear_v 1._o the_o whole_a diocese_n meet_v together_o with_o the_o bishop_n for_o public_a worship_n let_v all_o follow_v the_o bishop_n as_o jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o presbytery_n as_o the_o apostle_n let_v no_o church_n affair_n be_v manage_v without_o the_o bishop_n where_o the_o bishop_n appear_v let_v the_o multitude_n be_v vos_fw-fr be_v ign._n ad_fw-la smyr_n p._n 6._o edit_fw-la vos_fw-fr if_o the_o prayer_n of_o one_o or_o two_o be_v so_o powerful_a how_o much_o more_o be_v the_o prayer_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o the_o whole_a church_n he_o that_o come_v not_o into_o one_o place_n he_o be_v proud_a and_o self-condemned_n 34._o self-condemned_n ad_fw-la eph._n p._n 20._o 33_o 34._o do_v nothing_o without_o the_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n run_v all_o of_o you_o together_o into_o one_o temple_n of_o god_n as_o to_o one_o altar_n 34._o altar_n ad_fw-la mag._n p._n 33_o 34._o where_o the_o shepherd_n be_v there_o do_v you_o follow_v as_o the_o sheep_n ought_v to_o do_v 40._o do_v ad_fw-la phil._n p._n 40._o 2._o baptism_n be_v general_o administer_v by_o the_o bishop_n within_o his_o diocese_n it_o be_v not_o lawful_a without_o the_o bishop_n either_o to_o baptise_v or_o to_o celebrate_v the_o lord_n supper_n 6._o supper_n ad_fw-la smy_n p._n 6._o so_o tertullian_n under_o the_o hand_n of_o our_o bishop_n we_o protest_v that_o we_o renounce_v the_o devil_n and_o the_o pomp_n of_o this_o world_n 336._o world_n de_fw-fr cor._n mil._n p._n 336._o 3._o the_o bishop_n have_v but_o one_o altar_n or_o communion_n in_o his_o whole_a diocese_n at_o which_o he_o have_v administer_v the_o lord_n supper_n to_o his_o whole_a flock_n give_v diligence_n to_o use_v one_o eucharist_n for_o there_o be_v one_o flesh_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o one_o cup_n which_o represent_v the_o union_n of_o his_o blood_n one_o altar_n and_o one_o bishop_n with_o the_o presbytery_n and_o deacon_n my_o fellow-servant_n 41._o fellow-servant_n ad_fw-la phil._n p._n 41._o one_o altar_n here_o must_v be_v take_v individual_o as_o one_o bishop_n be_v it_o be_v absurd_a to_o say_v one_o specifical_a altar_n and_o one_o individual_a bishop_n tertullian_n say_v of_o the_o lord_n supper_n we_o receive_v it_o from_o no_o hand_n but_o from_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o precedent_n or_o bishop_n 338._o bishop_n de_fw-fr cor._n milit._n p._n 338._o they_o communicate_v at_o least_o once_o a_o week_n in_o some_o place_n twice_o or_o thrice_o one_o of_o our_o bishop_n will_v scarce_o be_v able_a to_o administer_v the_o lord_n supper_n in_o a_o whole_a month_n to_o all_o his_o diocese_n 4._o no_o marriage_n be_v make_v without_o the_o bishop_n those_o union_n be_v make_v with_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o bishop_n 13._o bishop_n ad_fw-la poly._n p._n 13._o 5._o the_o bishop_n take_v care_n of_o all_o the_o poor_a of_o the_o dicess_n neglect_v not_o the_o widow_n do_v you_o take_v care_n of_o they_o next_o unto_o the_o lord_n let_v nothing_o be_v do_v without_o thy_o advice_n let_v the_o people_n often_o assemble_v together_o inquire_v after_o all_o by_o name_n despise_v not_o men-servant_n and_o maid-servant_n 13._o maid-servant_n ad_fw-la poly._n p._n 12._o 13._o here_o the_o bishop_n be_v to_o take_v care_n of_o the_o poor_a widow_n of_o his_o diocese_n to_o see_v that_o nothing_o be_v do_v without_o his_o advice_n and_o that_o the_o congregation_n often_o meet_v together_o he_o be_v to_o take_v a_o account_n by_o name_n of_o those_o that_o be_v absent_a not_o omit_v servant-man_n and_o maid_n what_o diocesan_n bishop_n can_v perform_v all_o this_o in_o his_o diocese_n which_o consist_v of_o some_o score_n or_o hundred_o of_o parish_n many_o more_o testimony_n may_v be_v gather_v out_o of_o these_o epistle_n to_o prove_v that_o ignatius_n his_o bishop_n be_v but_o a_o parish-bishop_n thus_o we_o have_v make_v it_o evident_a that_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n be_v ledge_v in_o the_o presbyter_n of_o that_o church_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o change_n of_o the_o government_n afterward_o by_o the_o apostle_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o diocesan_n bishop_n there_o in_o ignatius_n his_o time_n the_o present_a bishop_n of_o salisbury_n do_v ingenuous_o acknowledge_v that_o ignatius_n be_v but_o the_o pastor_n of_o a_o particular_a church_n see_v the_o quotation_n in_o j._n oh_o plea_n p._n 30_o have_v invalidate_v the_o rector_n argument_n for_o diocesan_n episcopacy_n from_o 1_o tim._n and_o ignatius_n his_o epistle_n i_o proceed_v to_o consider_v what_o he_o have_v to_o offer_v in_o favour_n of_o titus_n his_o being_z bishop_n of_o crete_n if_o timothy_n be_v not_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n no_o more_o be_v titus_n of_o crete_n for_o the_o epistle_n direct_v to_o both_o be_v much_o of_o the_o same_o strain_n their_o power_n be_v the_o same_o and_o both_o be_v officer_n of_o the_o same_o species_n namely_o evangelist_n timothy_n be_v express_o so_o call_v and_o titus_n be_v real_o one_o as_o will_v be_v acknowledge_v by_o the_o learned_a for_o he_o be_v the_o apostle_n assistant_n and_o messenger_n to_o the_o church_n particular_o to_o that_o of_o corinth_n where_o he_o seem_v to_o have_v spend_v a_o great_a part_n of_o his_o time_n 2_o c●r_n 2.13_o &_o 7.6_o &_o 8.6_o the_o apostle_n call_v he_o his_o companion_n and_o fellow-worker_n 2_o cor._n 8.23_o we_o find_v he_o with_o the_o apostle_n at_o jerusalem_n gal._n 2.13_o paul_n leave_v titus_n in_o crete_n 63._o p._n 63._o to_o set_v in_o order_n the_o thing_n that_o be_v want_v and_o to_o ordain_v elder_n in_o every_o city_n as_o the_o rector_n observe_v tit._n 1.5_o 1._o it_o be_v no_o where_n say_v that_o paul_n make_v he_o bishop_n of_o crete_n the_o trust_n commit_v to_o he_o be_v such_o as_o a_o evangelist_n may_v discharge_v this_o i_o presume_v will_v not_o be_v deny_v eusebius_n express_o affirm_v it_o be_v part_n of_o their_o work_n to_o ordain_v pastor_n 31._o pastor_n eccl._n hist_o iii_o 31._o and_o the_o rector_n acknowledge_v that_o branch_n of_o their_o power_n p_o 115._o 2._o he_o be_v leave_v in_o crete_n but_o for_o a_o season_n as_o timothy_n be_v in_o ephesus_n for_o the_o apostle_n charge_v he_o to_o come_v to_o he_o to_o nicopolis_n 3.12_o tit._n 3.12_o when_o he_o shall_v send_v artemas_n or_o tychicus_n to_o he_o for_o there_o he_o intend_v to_o winter_n by_o which_o it_o be_v evident_a his_o stay_n in_o crete_n by_o paul_n appointment_n be_v not_o long_o perhaps_o not_o above_o half_a a_o year_n if_o so_o much_o after_o which_o we_o never_o read_v of_o his_o return_v thither_o but_o we_o find_v he_o after_o this_o send_v into_o
207_o parish_n in_o crete_n which_o divide_v between_o twenty_o five_o bishop_n there_o fall_v but_o eight_o parish_n to_o the_o share_n of_o each_o bishop_n and_o a_o overplus_n of_o 7_o 25_o part_n how_o different_a be_v these_o from_o modern_a bishopric_n a_o bishop_n may_v better_v oversee_a eight_o or_o nine_o parish_n than_o eight_o or_o nine_o score_n of_o parish_n j._n o._n prove_v that_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n consist_v of_o no_o more_o member_n than_o can_v ordinary_o meet_v in_o one_o place_n because_o that_o church_n have_v but_o one_o altar_n at_o which_o the_o whole_a congregation_n ordinary_o receive_v the_o lord_n supper_n in_o ignatius_n his_o time_n mr._n g._n answer_n that_o ignatius_n one_o altar_n signify_v not_o one_o numerical_a 143._o p._n 143._o but_o one_o specifical_a altar_n then_o ignatius_n one_o bishop_n must_v signify_v not_o one_o numerical_a but_o one_o specifical_a bishop_n he_o think_v there_o be_v more_o than_o one_o numerical_a altar_n because_o after_o the_o word_n allege_v by_o j._n o._n ignatius_n go_v on_o thus_o ibid._n ibid._n let_v that_o eucharist_n be_v account_v good_a and_o firm_a which_o be_v celebrate_v under_o the_o bishop_n or_o which_o he_o consent_v to_o under_o the_o bishop_n be_v plain_o in_o his_o presence_n and_o not_o under_o his_o authority_n as_o he_o explain_v it_o as_o be_v oppose_v to_o his_o consent_n in_o his_o absence_n his_o consent_n that_o the_o presbyter_n may_v administer_v in_o his_o absence_n do_v not_o prove_v more_o than_o one_o altar_n the_o parson_n of_o one_o parish_n which_o have_v but_o one_o altar_n may_v consent_v that_o his_o curate_n may_v administer_v the_o eucharist_n he_o further_o prove_v there_o be_v many_o altar_n under_o ignatius_n his_o bishop_n from_o that_o passage_n wherever_o the_o bishop_n appear_v there_o let_v the_o people_n be_v even_o as_o where_o jesus_n christ_n be_v not_o appear_v as_o he_o false_o render_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d there_o be_v the_o catholic_n church_n nothing_o can_v have_v be_v produce_v more_o impertinent_o than_o this_o passage_n which_o show_v that_o the_o multitude_n must_v be_v where_o the_o bishop_n be_v or_o appear_v his_o appearance_n must_v be_v understand_v of_o his_o personal_a visible_a appearance_n to_o talk_v of_o a_o invisible_a appearance_n be_v ridiculous_a and_o yet_o you_o must_v understand_v it_o so_o say_v our_o author_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o his_o person_n but_o authority_n say_v he_o even_o as_o jesus_n christ_n be_v with_o the_o catholic_n church_n not_o in_o his_o person_n but_o in_o his_o spiritual_a power_n 1._o this_o be_v worse_a and_o worse_o ignatius_n do_v not_o say_v where_o christ_n appear_v as_o he_o to_o serve_v a_o design_n false_o render_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o where_o jesus_n christ_n be_v ignatius_n know_v jesus_n christ_n to_o be_v invisible_a on_o earth_n since_o his_o ascension_n and_o that_o a_o bishop_n be_v visible_a and_o therefore_o say_v where_o the_o bishop_n appear_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o where_o christ_n be_v 2._o to_o deny_v christ_n to_o be_v personal_o present_a with_o his_o church_n be_v to_o deny_v he_o to_o be_v the_o second_o person_n in_o the_o trinity_n i_o hope_v he_o believe_v the_o divinity_n and_o omnipresence_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n though_o in_o a_o transport_v of_o zeal_n he_o forget_v the_o form_n of_o sound_a word_n the_o spiritual_a power_n of_o christ_n do_v not_o exclude_v his_o personal_a presence_n some_o man_n will_v talk_v any_o thing_n though_o never_o so_o little_a to_o the_o purpose_n rather_o than_o yield_v to_o the_o evidence_n of_o truth_n 145._o p._n 145._o he_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n take_v in_o all_o asia_n the_o proper_a because_o all_o they_o that_o dwell_v in_o asia_n hear_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n viz._n at_o ephesus_n he_o may_v as_o well_o have_v say_v that_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n take_v in_o the_o parthian_n and_o dweller_n in_o mesopotamia_n cappadocia_n pontus_n and_o asia_n etc._n etc._n for_o those_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n at_o jerusalem_n act_v 2.9_o 11._o he_o say_v j._n o._n shall_v have_v enter_v the_o list_n with_o dr._n maurice_n 146._o p._n 146._o who_o answer_v mr._n b._n and_o mr._n cl._n about_o the_o extent_n of_o bishopric_n j._n oh_o subject_a be_v ordination_n he_o be_v not_o concern_v in_o dr._n maurice_n book_n though_o he_o say_v something_o occasional_o concern_v the_o extent_n of_o church_n from_o ignatius_n and_o other_o he_o complain_v j._n o._n have_v trouble_v they_o with_o a_o new_a book_n upon_o a_o old_a subject_n ibid._n ibid._n without_o add_v any_o thing_n considerable_a to_o it_o it_o seem_v j._n oh_o book_n have_v create_v some_o trouble_n to_o they_o but_o what_o be_v the_o trouble_n be_v it_o that_o he_o write_v a_o new_a book_n upon_o a_o old_a subject_n that_o can_v be_v it_o for_o the_o rector_n have_v do_v so_o himself_o if_o it_o be_v a_o fault_n to_o write_v upon_o a_o old_a subject_n no_o man_n must_v write_v at_o all_o for_o there_o be_v scarce_o any_o thing_n new_a under_o the_o sun_n or_o do_v it_o trouble_v he_o that_o j._n o._n have_v not_o add_v any_o thing_n considerable_a to_o the_o subject_a that_o can_v be_v also_o except_o we_o suppose_v his_o own_o performance_n which_o have_v little_a of_o addition_n to_o what_o be_v find_v in_o bellarmine_n and_o other_o popish_a author_n to_o be_v a_o trouble_n to_o he_o i_o doubt_v then_o something_o else_o in_o the_o book_n trouble_v he_o he_o can_v tell_v what_o it_o be_v for_o he_o have_v good_a reason_n why_o he_o will_v not_o answer_v a_o book_n which_o he_o undertake_v to_o answer_n but_o content_v himself_o with_o a_o few_o slight_a remark_n upon_o two_o or_o three_o chapter_n and_o leave_v the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o book_n untouched_a i_o leave_v it_o to_o such_o as_o have_v read_v other_o author_n upon_o the_o subject_a of_o ordination_n by_o presbyter_n to_o judge_n of_o j._n oh_o performance_n whether_o the_o subject_n have_v receive_v any_o improvement_n by_o it_o he_o take_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o pain_n to_o prove_v what_o no_o body_n deny_v 149._o p._n 146_o 147_o 148_o 149._o viz._n that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v sometime_o agreement_n or_o unity_n and_o not_o always_o one_o place_n as_o j._n o._n render_v it_o in_o those_o word_n of_o ignatius_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d give_v diligence_n to_o assemble_v together_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d more_o frequent_o for_o when_o you_o often_o come_v together_o 25._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ign._n ad_fw-la eph._n p._n 25._o or_o into_o one_o place_n the_o power_n of_o satan_n be_v destroy_v one_o will_v think_v j._n oh_o translation_n very_o natural_a for_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d refer_v to_o one_o place_n and_o so_o must_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o follow_v immediate_o after_o but_o it_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v so_o render_v here_o say_v our_o author_n and_o the_o proof_n be_v there_o may_v have_v be_v several_a place_n for_o worship_n at_o ephesus_n p._n 148._o but_o he_o do_v not_o prove_v there_o be_v several_a place_n i_o have_v prove_v the_o contrary_a from_o the_o one_o altar_n mention_v in_o igna._n ad_fw-la magna_fw-la p._n 34._o he_o think_v ignatius_n do_v not_o intend_v one_o place_n by_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 149._o p._n 149._o because_o he_o speak_v a_o little_a after_o of_o the_o unity_n of_o their_o faith_n may_v they_o not_o have_v unity_n of_o faith_n in_o one_o place_n but_o we_o have_v sufficient_o prove_v above_o that_o ignatius_n his_o church_n ordinary_o meet_v in_o one_o place_n dr._n burnet_n acknowledge_v there_o be_v but_o one_o numerical_a altar_n to_o one_o diocese_n in_o ignatius_n time_n as_o j._n o._n quote_v he_o p._n 30._o mr._n g._n pass_v by_o the_o bishop_n unsaluted_a the_o learned_a mr._n mede_n confess_v that_o in_o those_o first_o time_n they_o have_v but_o one_o altar_n to_o a_o diocesan_n church_n this_o he_o confirm_v by_o instance_n out_o of_o justin_n martyr_n and_o out_o of_o cyprian_a ep._n 40.72_o 73._o de_fw-fr unit_fw-la eccl._n etc._n etc._n mede_n of_o church_n p._n 48_o 49_o 50._o i_o will_v not_o contend_v with_o he_o about_o the_o number_n of_o church_n build_v at_o constantinople_n by_o constantine_n the_o great_a but_o it_o be_v very_o improbable_a that_o they_o shall_v be_v two_o hundred_o as_o he_o extravagant_o talk_v socrates_n mention_n but_o two_o nicephorus_n speak_v of_o three_o great_a temple_n whereof_o that_o of_o sophia_n which_o he_o ascribe_v to_o constantine_n be_v build_v by_o constantius_n his_o son_n and_o be_v but_o a_o addition_n to_o the_o temple_n of_o irene_n he_o speak_v also_o of_o four_o
can_v resolve_v these_o difficulty_n which_o we_o shall_v expect_v in_o his_o celebrate_a consecration-sermon_n v._n but_o to_o return_v to_o the_o main_a subject_n our_o author_n will_v say_v something_o if_o he_o know_v what_o for_o the_o jus_fw-la divinum_fw-la of_o episcopacy_n but_o his_o discourse_n be_v so_o cloudy_a confuse_a and_o inconsisten_v that_o it_o be_v hard_o to_o imagine_v what_o he_o drive_v at_o in_o several_a place_n his_o book_n consist_v of_o five_o chapter_n 1._o in_o the_o first_o chapter_n he_o endeavour_v to_o prove_v that_o none_o but_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n do_v ordain_v suppose_v this_o be_v grant_v he_o which_o i_o have_v prove_v to_o be_v false_a i_o can_v see_v what_o advantage_n he_o can_v make_v of_o it_o for_o bishop_n be_v neither_o apostle_n nor_o prophet_n he_o himself_o make_v they_o evangelist_n which_o be_v different_a from_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n eph._n 4.11_o 2._o in_o the_o second_o chapter_n he_o will_v prove_v that_o st._n paul_n towards_o the_o decline_a part_n of_o his_o life_n make_v timothy_n and_o titus_n bishop_n of_o ephesus_n and_o crete_n in_o answer_n to_o which_o i_o have_v full_o prove_v from_o act_n 20._o that_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n and_o by_o undeniable_a consequence_n of_o all_o other_o church_n be_v commit_v to_o the_o presbyter_n in_o parity_n and_o not_o to_o one_o supreme_a precedent_n i_o have_v evidence_v this_o government_n to_o be_v divine_a perpetual_a and_o a_o apt_a remedy_n against_o schism_n i_o have_v show_v that_o it_o be_v settle_v by_o the_o apostle_n when_o he_o can_v oversee_a that_o church_n no_o more_o and_o have_v no_o prospect_n of_o ever_o see_v it_o again_o it_o be_v pretend_v by_o the_o late_a asserter_n of_o episcopacy_n that_o the_o apostle_n when_o they_o take_v their_o last_o leave_n of_o the_o church_n settle_a bishop_n for_o their_o successor_n to_o preside_v over_o the_o presbyter_n as_o a_o remedy_n against_o the_o grow_a schism_n i_o have_v demonstrate_v from_o the_o 20_o of_o the_o act_n that_o it_o be_v quite_o otherwise_o that_o st._n paul_n leave_v the_o presbyter_n of_o ephesus_n as_o his_o ordinary_a successor_n in_o the._n government_n of_o that_o church_n and_o that_o in_o prospect_n of_o schism_n and_o of_o his_o final_a departure_n from_o they_o the_o evidence_n of_o this_o establishment_n be_v so_o bright_a and_o convince_a that_o our_o author_n can_v but_o acknowledge_v it_o p._n 47._o and_o the_o poor_a shift_n which_o he_o use_v there_o to_o avoid_v the_o force_n of_o this_o unanswerable_a argument_n show_v the_o power_n of_o interest_n and_o temptation_n upon_o self-convicted_n mind_n the_o proof_n for_o timothy_n be_v bishop_n of_o ephesus_n depend_v upon_o a_o nice_a point_n of_o chronology_n which_o at_o best_o be_v doubtful_a and_o amount_n to_o no_o more_o than_o a_o probability_n and_o be_v not_o capable_a of_o a_o demonstration_n this_o leave_v the_o foundation_n of_o episcopacy_n doubtful_a and_o uncertain_a but_o our_o proof_n that_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n be_v settle_v in_o the_o elder_n of_o that_o church_n be_v ground_v upon_o plain_a matter_n of_o fact_n that_o can_v he_o deny_v it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o apostle_n have_v no_o prospect_n of_o see_v the_o ephesian_a elder_n any_o more_o when_o he_o commit_v the_o government_n of_o that_o church_n to_o they_o act_v 20.25_o 28._o and_o therefore_o the_o elder_n of_o ephesus_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n in_o the_o government_n of_o that_o church_n but_o it_o be_v not_o certain_a that_o the_o apostle_n make_v timothy_n supreme_a governor_n of_o that_o church_n afterward_o most_o chronologer_n the_o defender_n of_o episcopacy_n not_o except_v be_v of_o opinion_n that_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n be_v write_v before_o the_o congress_n at_o miletus_n mention_v in_o act_n 20.17_o whence_o it_o natural_o follow_v that_o his_o charge_n in_o ephesus_n be_v occasional_a and_o temporary_a as_o a_o unfixed_a evangelist_n 2_o tim._n 4.5_o and_o the_o government_n of_o that_o church_n be_v leave_v in_o the_o elder_n of_o it_o act_n 20.17_o 28._o as_o the_o supreme_a and_o perpetual_a governor_n of_o it_o after_o the_o apostle_n paul_n it_o seem_v no_o small_a disparagement_n to_o the_o diocesan_n cause_n that_o the_o grand_a patron_n of_o it_o so_o extreme_o differ_v among_o themselves_o and_o can_v agree_v about_o the_o foundation_n of_o it_o the_o popish_a writer_n jesuit_n and_o other_o do_v general_o affirm_v that_o bishop_n be_v settle_v betimes_o by_o the_o apostle_n in_o all_o church_n and_o that_o though_o the_o name_n of_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n be_v common_a the_o office_n be_v distinct_a the_o old_a protestant_a writer_n confess_v that_o god_n have_v prescribe_v not_o one_o form_n of_o church-government_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n so_o whitgift_n in_o dr._n stillingfleet_n iren._n and_o hooker_n eccl._n polit._n lib._n iii_o and_o if_o no_o form_n be_v command_v therefore_o not_o the_o prelatical_a other_o both_o papist_n and_o protestant_n do_v say_v that_o the_o presbyter_n mention_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v bishop_n in_o a_o proper_a sense_n thus_o petavius_n and_o hammond_n but_o with_o this_o difference_n petavius_n think_v there_o be_v many_o bishop_n in_o one_o church_n as_o in_o ephesus_n and_o that_o the_o simple_a manner_n of_o the_o church_n will_v then_o bear_v this_o till_o ambition_n have_v corrupt_v men._n dr._n hammond_n conceive_v there_o be_v but_o one_o bishop_n in_o one_o church_n this_o notion_n of_o bishop_n without_o subject_a elder_n be_v begin_v by_o scotus_n as_o fr._n a_o sancta_fw-la clara_n intimate_v some_o late_a writer_n acknowledge_v that_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n be_v the_o same_o at_o first_o but_o that_o the_o apostle_n towards_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o their_o day_n appoint_v the_o new_a order_n of_o superior_a bishop_n bishop_n pearson_n dr._n beveridge_n and_o other_o go_v this_o way_n the_o former_a hypothesis_n make_v all_o the_o presbyter_n mention_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n to_o be_v real_a bishop_n and_o this_o make_v all_o the_o bishop_n mention_v there_o to_o be_v mere_a presbyter_n and_o pretend_v that_o diocesan_n bishop_n be_v settle_v afterward_o our_o author_n espouse_n this_o last_o opinion_n and_o plead_v for_o it_o in_o his_o loose_a and_o confuse_a way_n this_o hypothesis_n be_v no_o less_o precarious_a than_o the_o former_a and_o receive_v very_o little_a confirmation_n from_o the_o author_n of_o tentamen_n novum_n it_o be_v much_o more_o honourable_a and_o safe_a for_o the_o defender_n of_o episcopacy_n to_o fix_v it_o on_o the_o best_a foundation_n it_o have_v to_o wit_n the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n by_o which_o the_o first_o reformer_n profess_o hold_v it_o it_o be_v the_o express_a doctrine_n of_o the_o old_a church_n of_o england_n before_o bishop_n land_n time_n that_o bishop_n as_o superior_a to_o presbyter_n be_v a_o appointment_n of_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n as_o j._n o._n have_v prove_v in_o his_o plea_n p._n 113_o 114._o this_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n which_o acknowledge_v nothing_o by_o divine_a right_n in_o a_o bishop_n but_o his_o be_v a_o presbyter_n 37._o hen._n viii_o cap._n 17._o it_o be_v enact_v and_o declare_v that_o arch-bishop_n bishop_n arch-deacon_n and_o other_o ecclesiastical_a person_n have_v no_o manner_n of_o jurisdiction_n ecclesiastical_a but_o by_o under_z and_o from_o his_o royal_a majesty_n the_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o ireland_n to_o who_o by_o holy_a scripture_n all_o authority_n and_o power_n be_v whole_o give_v to_o hear_v and_o determine_v all_o manner_n of_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a the_o same_o be_v declare_v in_o a_o act_n of_o parliament_n make_v 1_o edw._n vi_o cap._n 2._o in_o these_o word_n all_o authority_n of_o jurisdiction_n spiritual_a and_o temporal_a be_v derive_v and_o deduce_v from_o the_o king_n majesty_n as_o supreme_a head_n of_o these_o church_n and_o realm_n of_o england_n and_o ireland_n see_v cook_n be_v rep._n de_fw-la jure_fw-la reg._n eccl._n fol._n 8._o the_o institution_n of_o a_o christian_a man_n print_v in_o the_o year_n 1543._o and_o allow_v by_o both_o house_n of_o parliament_n mention_n two_o order_n only_o viz._n priest_n and_o deacon_n as_o of_o divine_a right_n 3._o in_o the_o three_o chapter_n the_o rector_n attempt_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n be_v mitten_v after_o paul_n first_o bond_n at_o rome_n and_o consequent_o after_o the_o meeting_n at_o miletus_n act_v 20.17_o in_o my_o animadversion_n on_o this_o chapter_n i_o have_v vindicated_n the_o ancient_a chronologer_n and_o prove_v by_o several_a argument_n that_o that_o epistle_n be_v write_v before_o the_o meeting_n at_o miletus_n and_o by_o necessary_a consequence_n the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n be_v in_o the_o presbytery_n after_o the_o write_n
passage_n be_v a_o little_a unlucky_o produce_v for_o 1._o it_o over-throws_a the_o notion_n of_o the_o learned_a assertor_n of_o episcopacy_n that_o a_o diocese_n be_v the_o low_a species_n of_o a_o church_n and_o that_o particular_a congregation_n be_v but_o oratory_n and_o no_o church_n a_o bishop_n and_o a_o church_n be_v relative_n but_o eusebius_n speak_v of_o church_n of_o alexandria_n therefore_o there_o must_v be_v bishop_n of_o alexandria_n not_o one_o bishop_n and_o this_o agreeable_a enough_o to_o the_o apostolical_a platform_n who_o appoint_v several_a bishop_n in_o one_o city_n act_v 20.17_o 28._o phil._n 1.1_o 2._o mark_n be_v a_o evangelist_n a_o extraordinary_a unfixed_a officer_n eph._n 4.11_o 1_o pet._n 5.13_o eusebius_n call_v he_o peter_n companion_n and_o a_o evangelist_n ibid._n hist_o 11.14.23_o ibid._n 3._o anianus_n succeed_v mark_v the_o evangelist_n in_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n not_o as_o a_o bishop_n of_o a_o superior_a order_n to_o the_o presbyter_n there_o but_o as_o a_o honourable_a precedent_n in_o their_o assembly_n such_o a_o moderator_n as_o the_o reform_a church_n have_v in_o their_o synod_n and_o assembly_n without_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n over_o his_o colleague_n and_o that_o he_o be_v no_o more_o 130._o cap._n to_o p._n 126._o 130._o j._n o._n have_v prove_v at_o large_a in_o his_o plea_n out_o of_o jerom_n and_o eutychius_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n where_o we_o have_v a_o clear_a proof_n of_o presbyter_n ordain_v for_o almost_o two_o hundred_o year_n together_o the_o rector_n do_v not_o judge_v it_o adviseable_a to_o meddle_v with_o j._n oh_o remark_n upon_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n either_o he_o have_v read_v that_o chapter_n in_o j._n oh_o book_n or_o he_o have_v not_o if_o he_o have_v he_o be_v inexcusable_a if_o not_o he_o shall_v read_v book_n before_o he_o undertake_v to_o answer_v they_o prov._n 18.13_o he_o that_o answer_v a_o matter_n before_o he_o hear_v or_o understand_v it_o it_o be_v folly_n and_o shame_n unto_o he_o 4._o moreover_o so_o great_a a_o multitude_n say_v the_o rector_n out_o of_o euseb_n there_o embrace_v the_o faith_n etc._n etc._n he_o suppress_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o sentence_n which_o be_v thus_o that_o even_o philo_n judge_v it_o worth_a while_n to_o describe_v their_o way_n of_o live_v our_o author_n will_v persuade_v we_o by_o this_o half_a sentence_n that_o there_o be_v vast_a number_n of_o convert_v in_o alexandria_n in_o mark_n be_v time_n but_o leave_v out_o the_o rest_n by_o a_o cunning_a etc._n etc._n for_o he_o know_v the_o invalidity_n of_o euseb_n reason_n that_o philo_n have_v describe_v the_o christian_n in_o egypt_n whereas_o the_o truth_n be_v he_o write_v of_o the_o essenes_n and_o not_o of_o the_o christian_n as_o the_o learned_a have_v prove_v this_o i_o note_v only_o by_o the_o by_o as_o a_o instance_n of_o this_o gentleman_n unfairness_n in_o quote_v author_n otherwise_o i_o be_o not_o concern_v in_o the_o number_n of_o the_o alexandrian_a convert_v for_o as_o they_o increase_v there_o and_o in_o other_o place_n they_o multiply_v into_o more_o church_n who_o have_v pastor_n assign_v they_o with_o power_n of_o discipline_n over_o their_o respective_a flock_n in_o short_a the_o instance_n of_o the_o alexandrian_a bishop_n make_v altogether_o for_o we_o for_o he_o be_v but_o the_o chief_a presbyter_n as_o a_o archdeacon_n be_v the_o chief_a deacon_n choose_v and_o name_v by_o the_o presbyter_n without_o any_o consecration_n and_o in_o his_o room_n the_o presbyter_n ordain_v another_o as_o j._n o._n have_v prove_v in_o his_o plea_n mr._n g._n in_o the_o next_o place_n show_v the_o parallel_n between_o their_o church_n government_n and_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n our_o episcopal_a government_n say_v he_o be_v establish_v upon_o certain_a canon_n and_o law_n make_v and_o consent_v unto_o by_o the_o convocation_n consist_v of_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n and_o by_o the_o multitude_n of_o believer_n that_o be_v their_o representative_n in_o parliament_n and_o thus_o it_o be_v in_o the_o council_n of_o jerusalem_n act_v 15._o let_v we_o a_o little_a consider_v this_o paragraph_n 1._o i_o expect_v he_o will_v have_v say_v the_o episcopal_a government_n be_v establish_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o he_o ingenious_o confess_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o matter_n that_o it_o be_v establish_v upon_o certain_a canon_n and_o law_n of_o humane_a devise_v we_o conceive_v the_o law_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n contain_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n sufficient_a for_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n 2._o he_o make_v the_o multitude_n of_o believer_n in_o jerusalem_n to_o be_v as_o the_o representative_n of_o the_o people_n in_o parliament_n many_o of_o our_o learned_a antiquary_n have_v industrious_o labour_v to_o search_v into_o the_o original_a of_o parliament_n some_o conceive_v they_o owe_v their_o beginning_n to_o the_o norman_n some_o to_o the_o saxon_n other_o derive_v they_o high_o all_o confess_v the_o rise_v of_o they_o like_o the_o head_n of_o nilus_n very_o obscure_a but_o this_o gentleman_n by_o a_o unparalleled_a felicity_n of_o invention_n have_v find_v they_o in_o the_o council_n at_o jerusalem_n act_v 15._o where_o no_o body_n before_o ever_o dream_v of_o they_o however_o i_o be_o glad_a to_o find_v he_o speak_v any_o thing_n in_o favour_n of_o parliament_n for_o some_o year_n ago_o when_o they_o be_v out_o of_o request_n he_o advance_v the_o prerogative_n to_o that_o degree_n that_o parliament_n the_o bulwark_n of_o the_o subject_n liberty_n be_v very_o insignificant_a thing_n with_o he_o i_o will_v give_v a_o few_o instance_n 1._o he_o will_v exempt_v the_o clergy_n from_o the_o power_n of_o parliament_n in_o point_n of_o tax_n we_o the_o clergy_n say_v he_o be_v hook_a in_o 4._o three_o sermon_n of_o subjection_n pr._n 1683_o pref._n p._n 4._o i_o know_v not_o how_o to_o pay_v tax_n without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o convocation_n 2._o he_o will_v not_o allow_v the_o aggrieved_a subject_n the_o benefit_n of_o petition_v and_o addressing_z their_o prince_n especial_o when_o he_o be_v under_o some_o disadvantage_n 3._o he_o make_v the_o king_n in_o effect_n the_o sole_a proprietor_n of_o our_o estate_n and_o say_v 11_o sermon_n 1._o p._n 11_o we_o must_v supply_v his_o occasion_n the_o five_o hundred_o at_o once_o i._n e._n a_o house_n of_o commons_o shall_v forbid_v we_o because_o our_o gold_n and_o silver_n bear_v his_o image_n and_o superscription_n 13._o p._n 13._o the_o meaning_n be_v this_o the_o king_n have_v power_n to_o tax_n we_o without_o the_o consent_n of_o parliament_n 4._o he_o add_v and_o to_o this_o i._o e._n to_o supply_v the_o king_n without_o the_o consent_n of_o parliament_n we_o be_v bind_v in_o conscience_n though_o the_o prince_n shall_v be_v a_o usurper_n and_o a_o tyrant_n 15._o p._n 13_o 14_o 15._o nay_o say_v our_o author_n a_o violent_a and_o original_o unjust_a power_n by_o success_n become_v a_o legal_a and_o righteous_a authority_n 5._o he_o complain_v that_o the_o right_n of_o the_o people_n be_v too_o much_o swell_v their_o property_n too_o much_o enlarge_v their_o liberty_n too_o much_o extend_v 17._o p._n 17._o this_o be_v in_o the_o year_n 1683._o when_v the_o popish_a plot_n have_v be_v stifle_v sham-plot_n set_v on_o foot_n for_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o best_a patriot_n the_o right_n and_o franchise_n of_o city_n and_o corporation_n undermine_v and_o violate_v parliament_n disgrace_v popery_n and_o slavery_n break_v in_o irresistible_o upon_o we_o under_o the_o conduct_n and_o influence_n of_o the_o then_o duke_n of_o york_n 6._o he_o affirm_v that_o the_o prince_n be_v accountable_a to_o none_o but_o god_n for_o any_o misgovernment_n nay_o he_o be_v in_o effect_n continue_v he_o the_o sole_a sovereign_a power_n if_o he_o please_v to_o usurp_v and_o exercise_v it_o nor_o can_v the_o subject_a conscientious_o resist_v he_o 21._o p._n 21._o 7._o he_o think_v it_o be_v one_o main_a ground_n of_o political_a government_n to_o deprive_v the_o subject_a from_o be_v his_o own_o judge_n and_o asserter_n of_o his_o own_o privilege_n 8._o 22._o p._n 22._o he_o conceive_v the_o king_n coronation_n oath_n be_v a_o voluntary_a act_n of_o grace_n unto_o which_o he_o be_v not_o oblige_v by_o the_o fundamental_a constitution_n 23._o p._n 23._o 9_o if_o a_o prince_n shall_v not_o give_v this_o assurance_n it_o be_v my_o judgement_n say_v he_o he_o be_v not_o oblige_v to_o govern_v strict_o by_o the_o present_a law_n ibid._n ibid._n i_o doubt_v i_o have_v tire_v the_o reader_n with_o these_o political_a maxim_n sibthorp_n and_o mainwaring_n be_v dull_a fellow_n to_o this_o grand_a master_n of_o politic_n who_o have_v leave_v it_o whole_o to_o his_o prince_n good_a nature_n whether_o he_o will_v make_v use_n of_o his_o multitude_n of_o believer_n
do_v he_o mean_v that_o some_o of_o they_o have_v strong_a presumption_n other_o have_v moral_a assurance_n of_o the_o succession_n or_o rather_o that_o their_o moral_a assurance_n be_v no_o more_o than_o a_o strong_a presumption_n and_o so_o the_o meaning_n be_v they_o strong_o presume_v they_o be_v minister_n but_o can_v be_v certain_a upon_o this_o principle_n this_o be_v but_o very_o cold_a comfort_n to_o one_o who_o labour_v under_o fear_n and_o temptation_n about_o his_o acceptance_n with_o god_n in_o the_o exercise_n of_o his_o ministry_n the_o inextricable_a difficulty_n about_o the_o succession_n which_o have_v puzzle_v the_o most_o learned_a and_o diligent_a inquirer_n may_v increase_v but_o can_v have_v no_o tendency_n to_o remove_v his_o doubt_n the_o waldenses_n prove_v their_o call_n to_o the_o ministry_n by_o the_o success_n 234._o act_n &_o mon._n p._n 234._o and_o not_o by_o the_o suecession_n of_o it_o as_o we_o note_v before_o and_o instead_o of_o perplex_v their_o head_n with_o a_o uninterrupted_a succession_n they_o assert_v this_o position_n such_o as_o hear_v or_o obey_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o have_v a_o right_a faith_n be_v the_o right_a church_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o this_o church_n the_o key_n of_o the_o church_n be_v give_v to_o drive_v away_o wolf_n and_o to_o institute_v true_a pastor_n nor_o be_v they_o singular_a in_o this_o principle_n it_o be_v assert_v by_o the_o learned_a defender_n of_o the_o reformation_n in_o their_o discourse_n against_o the_o jesuit_n the_o stiff_a maintainer_n of_o this_o succession_n and_o they_o have_v demonstrate_v that_o the_o be_v of_o the_o christian_a church_n can_v depend_v upon_o this_o succession_n and_o that_o it_o have_v be_v interrupt_v again_o and_o again_o there_o may_v be_v a_o sort_n of_o succession_n without_o a_o true_a church_n as_o in_o the_o romish_a false_a church_n there_o may_v be_v a_o true_a church_n without_o a_o succession_n as_o the_o foreign_a reform_a church_n 38._o eccl._n polit._n lib._n vii_o p._n 37_o 38._o mr._n hooker_n affirm_v the_o whole_a church_n visible_a the_o true_a original_a subject_n of_o all_o power_n and_o thence_o infer_v that_o a_o continue_a succession_n of_o bishop_n be_v not_o necessary_a to_o ordination_n this_o strong_o presumptuous_a gentleman_n shall_v have_v answer_v j._n oh_o reasins_z against_o this_o succession_n before_o he_o have_v talk_v of_o his_o moral_a assurance_n concern_v it_o but_o some_o people_n be_v never_o more_o sure_a than_o when_o they_o be_v further_a from_o truth_n thus_o i_o have_v follow_v he_o through_o his_o tedious_a preface_n let_v not_o the_o reader_n blame_v i_o for_o want_n of_o method_n in_o some_o place_n because_o i_o follow_v the_o author_n in_o his_o digression_n chap._n ii_o the_o jewish_a church_n not_o the_o first_o establish_v church_n the_o levitical_a priesthood_n no_o pattern_n for_o gospel_n minister_n clemens_n romanus_n vindicated_n whether_o jesus_n christ_n model_v his_o church_n after_o the_o jewish_a pattern_n or_o leave_v it_o in_o a_o state_n of_o oligarchy_n as_o our_o author_n say_v his_o 1._o instance_n of_o ordination_n from_o act_n 1._o consider_v 2._o the_o ordination_n of_o the_o seven_o deacon_n they_o be_v minister_n of_o table_n not_o of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n prove_v from_o scripture_n and_o antiquity_n objection_n answer_v 3_o his_o three_o instance_n of_o ordination_n from_o act._n 9.17_o consider_v 4._o his_o four_o from_o act_n 13.1_o 2_o 3._o this_o instance_n of_o ordination_n by_o presbyter_n vindicate_v his_o account_n of_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n examine_v 5._o his_o instance_n from_o act_n 14.13_o examine_v 6._o act_n 19.6_o 7._o consider_v 7._o 1_o cor._n 5.3_o 4_o 5._o vindicate_v 8._o 1_o tim._n 4.14_o for_o ordination_n by_o presbyter_n vindicate_v dr._n owen_n defend_v the_o rector_n unsound_a in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n 9_o 1_o pet._n 5.2_o vindicate_v he_o take_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o pain_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o apostle_n be_v superior_a to_o presbyter_n which_o no_o body_n ever_o deny_v this_o be_v the_o chief_a scope_n of_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o his_o book_n in_o which_o he_o have_v furnish_v we_o with_o some_o rare_a notion_n of_o church_n government_n he_o tell_v we_o 1._o p._n 1._o that_o the_o church_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v the_o first_o establish_v church_n in_o the_o world_n that_o we_o know_v of_o have_v god_n no_o church_n in_o the_o world_n for_o about_o 24.50_o year_n till_o the_o law_n be_v give_v upon_o mount_n sinai_n be_v there_o no_o worship_a congregation_n no_o divine_a law_n of_o worship_n in_o the_o world_n before_o moses_n time_n we_o read_v of_o sacrifice_n and_o invocation_n on_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n gen._n 4.3_o 4_o 24._o and_o be_v there_o no_o assembly_n for_o those_o act_n of_o worship_n we_o read_v of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n as_o distinct_a from_o the_o daughter_n of_o man_n and_o that_o the_o mixture_n of_o the_o profess_o holy_a seed_n of_o seth_n with_o the_o profane_a gainites_n sill_v the_o world_n with_o wickedness_n gen._n 6._o the_o degeneracy_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o visible_a church_n of_o god_n at_o that_o time_n cause_v the_o flood_n he_o that_o can_v believe_v that_o god_n have_v no_o church_n before_o the_o flood_n may_v also_o believe_v there_o never_o be_v a_o flood_n do_v noah_n the_o father_n of_o the_o new_a world_n who_o have_v immediate_a rcvelation_n from_o god_n as_o most_o of_o the_o patriarch_n have_v establish_v no_o church_n among_o his_o numerous_a posterity_n be_v god_n indifferent_a whether_o he_o will_v have_v a_o church_n or_o be_v noah_n unfaithful_a in_o transmit_v the_o divine_a establishment_n to_o his_o offspring_n it_o be_v true_a they_o soon_o degenerate_v gen._n 11._o but_o that_o be_v a_o argument_n they_o have_v be_v a_o covenant-people_n be_v there_o no_o church_n establish_v in_o abrabam_n numerous_a and_o princely_a family_n gen._n 14.14_o &_o 23.6_o he_o erect_v altar_n for_o sacrifice_n and_o call_v upon_o the_o lord_n wherever_o he_o come_v god_n renew_v his_o covenant_n with_o he_o and_o admit_v his_o infant_n seed_n by_o circumcision_n into_o a_o visible_a church-membership_a whereby_o they_o be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n do_v righteous_a melchizedeck_v king_n of_o salem_n who_o be_v priest_n of_o the_o most_o high_a god_n as_o the_o patriarch_n general_o be_v take_v no_o care_n to_o establish_v a_o church_n among_o his_o subject_n i_o hope_v one_o may_v lawful_o doubt_v this_o gentleman_n notion_n of_o church-government_n who_o thus_o blunder_v about_o the_o very_a existence_n of_o a_o church_n but_o continue_v he_o 1._o p_o 1._o the_o jewish_a church_n be_v govern_v by_o a_o highpriest_n inferior_a priest_n and_o levite_n 1._o i_o begin_v now_o to_o suspect_v the_o reason_n why_o he_o will_v have_v no_o establish_a church_n before_o the_o jewish_a he_o do_v not_o read_v of_o any_o subordinate_a priest_n and_o levite_n that_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o patriarchal_a priest_n he_o seem_v to_o be_v content_a that_o god_n shall_v have_v no_o church_n in_o the_o world_n for_o almost_o 2500_o year_n rather_o than_o want_v a_o model_n for_o his_o hierarchy_n consist_v of_o bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n this_o be_v agreeable_a enough_o to_o his_o hypothesis_n that_o diocesan_n bishop_n be_v essential_a to_o a_o church_n 2._o the_o highpriest_n priest_n and_o levite_n be_v not_o the_o model_n for_o gospel_n church_n for_o we_o read_v of_o no_o institution_n of_o bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n we_o find_v bishop_n and_o deacon_n there_o phil._n 1.1_o but_o the_o scripture-bishop_n be_v the_o same_o with_o the_o scripture-presbyter_n 3._o the_o jewish_a highpriest_n be_v a_o eminent_a type_n of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o highpriest_n of_o our_o profession_n he_o be_v one_o as_o the_o jewish_a highpriest_n be_v and_o in_o this_o respect_n we_o follow_v the_o jewish_a typical_a precedent_n woe_n be_v under_o jesus_n christ_n our_o only_a chief-priest_n who_o have_v appoint_v presbyter_n and_o deacon_n as_o under_o officer_n in_o the_o christian_a church_n 4._o this_o be_v the_o great_a argument_n of_o the_o papist_n for_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n the_o jew_n have_v one_o chief-priest_n therefore_o the_o christian_n must_v have_v one_o chief-bishop_n so_o bellarmine_n argue_v 9_o de_fw-fr rom._n pontif._n i._n 9_o it_o be_v unhappy_a that_o the_o argument_n for_o diocesan_n episcopacy_n equal_o serve_v the_o papacy_n the_o father_n especial_o clemens_n romanus_n say_v the_o rector_n seem_v to_o make_v this_o a_o precedent_n for_o the_o government_n of_o christian_a church_n by_o a_o bishop_n presbyter_n and_o deacon_n ibid._n ibid._n the_o first_o answer_v the_o high_a priest_n the_o second_o the_o inferior_a priest_n and_o the_o three_o the_o levite_n either_o the_o rector_n have_v never_o read_v clemens_n romanus_n or_o
christ_n and_o his_o gospel_n note_v here_o 1._o that_o the_o doctrine_n which_o the_o rector_n ridicules_a in_o dr._n owen_n be_v the_o orthodox_n doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o of_o all_o ancient_a author_n of_o christ_n church_n 2._o that_o whosoever_o join_v work_n with_o faith_n in_o the_o act_n of_o justify_v be_v a_o adversary_n to_o christ_n and_o his_o gospel_n and_o not_o to_o be_v repute_v for_o a_o christian_n either_o the_o rector_n have_v subscribe_v the_o book_n of_o homily_n or_o he_o have_v not_o if_o he_o have_v not_o he_o have_v no_o legal_a right_n to_o his_o benefice_n be_v not_o due_o qualify_v according_a to_o the_o statute_n which_o require_v all_o ecclesiastical_a person_n to_o subscribe_v the_o thirty-nine_o article_n on_o pain_n of_o deprivation_n whereof_o the_o xxxv_o article_n declare_v that_o the_o book_n of_o homily_n do_v contain_v a_o godly_a and_o wholesome_a doctrine_n and_o necessary_a for_o these_o time_n the_o same_o subscription_n be_v require_v by_o the_o canon_n in_o this_o form_n can._n 36._o i_o n._n n._n do_v willing_o &_o ex_fw-la animo_fw-la subscribe_v to_o these_o three_o article_n above_o mention_v and_o to_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v contain_v in_o they_o the_o three_o article_n in_o the_o canon_n respect_v the_o thirty-nine_o article_n of_o religion_n which_o the_o subseriber_n be_v to_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v all_o agreeable_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n if_o he_o have_v subscribe_v the_o article_n and_o consequent_o the_o book_n of_o homily_n he_o have_v subscribe_v to_o the_o sentence_n of_o his_o own_o condemnation_n viz._n that_o he_o who_o join_v work_n with_o faith_n in_o the_o office_n of_o justify_v be_v a_o adversary_n to_o christ_n and_o his_o gospel_n and_o not_o to_o be_v repute_v for_o a_o christian_n he_o that_o be_v so_o liberal_a in_o pass_v sentence_n on_o his_o neighbour_n as_o no_o true_a minister_n shall_v review_v the_o sentence_n he_o have_v pass_v upon_o himself_o as_o no_o true_a christian_n while_o he_o corrupt_v the_o foundation-doctrine_n of_o justification_n thus_o i_o have_v vindicate_v 1_o tim._n 4.14_o from_o the_o weak_a and_o self-contradicting_a exception_n of_o the_o rector_n the_o rest_n of_o this_o chapter_n be_v only_o a_o recapitulation_n of_o his_o long_a perplex_a commentary_n upon_o that_o plain_a text._n he_o refer_v 1_o pet._n 5.2_o where_o the_o elder_n be_v exhort_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o feed_v the_o flock_n and_o to_o take_v the_o oversight_n of_o it_o 37._o p._n 37._o to_o a_o appendix_n by_o itself_o because_o he_o know_v not_o in_o what_o order_n of_o time_n to_o place_v it_o let_v it_o be_v imagine_v say_v he_o for_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v to_o be_v write_v before_o it_o be_v decree_v throughout_o the_o world_n that_o one_o presbyter_n shall_v be_v set_v over_o the_o rest_n no_o such_o decree_n can_v be_v produce_v in_o scripture_n nor_o be_v there_o any_o such_o decree_n make_v in_o the_o apostolical_a time_n this_o be_v a_o mere_a fiction_n of_o his_o own_o he_o allow_v the_o elder_n in_o 1_o pet._n 5._o to_o be_v governor_n 39_o p._n 38_o 39_o but_o not_o supreme_a governor_n for_o christ_n and_o peter_n be_v above_o they_o do_v ever_o man_n more_o egregious_o trifle_n who_o ever_o affirm_v elder_n to_o be_v supreme_a governor_n equal_a to_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n peter_n here_o exhort_v the_o elder_n to_o feed_v or_o govern_v the_o flock_n for_o so_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v 2.27_o signify_v john_n 22.16_o rev._n 2.27_o and_o to_o perform_v the_o duty_n of_o bishop_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d towards_o they_o and_o he_o do_v not_o set_v one_o presbyter_n over_o the_o rest_n therefore_o they_o be_v to_o govern_v and_o oversee_v the_o church_n in_o a_o state_n of_o parity_n but_o say_v mr._n g._n peter_n be_v a_o shepherd_n above_o they_o 1._o so_o be_v all_o apostle_n prophet_n and_o evangelist_n above_o ordinary_a presbyter_n but_o he_o can_v show_v in_o all_o the_o n._n t._n that_o person_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o order_n be_v set_v over_o other_o of_o that_o order_n as_o for_o example_n that_o any_o one_o apostle_n be_v set_v over_o the_o other_o apostle_n or_o any_o one_o prophet_n set_v over_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o prophet_n or_o any_o one_o evangelist_n set_v over_o the_o other_o evangelist_n nor_o any_o one_o ordinary_a presbyter_n set_v over_o the_o other_o presbyter_n until_o he_o have_v prove_v this_o which_o have_v not_o be_v yet_o do_v he_o do_v nothing_o 2._o he_o ascribe_v unto_o peter_n a_o large_a diocese_n pontus_n galatia_n cappadocia_n asia_n and_o bythynia_n 1_o pet._n 1.1_o he_o acknowledge_v 39_o p._n 39_o that_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n be_v the_o low_a rank_n and_o degree_n of_o church_n officer_n eph._n 4.11_o and_o if_o so_o they_o be_v all_o in_o a_o state_n of_o parity_n for_o those_o in_o the_o low_a degree_n can_v be_v at_o the_o same_o time_n and_o in_o the_o same_o respect_n in_o a_o superior_a degree_n he_o make_v bishop_n of_o a_o superior_a degree_n above_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n if_o so_o they_o be_v either_o apostle_n or_o prophet_n or_o evangelist_n for_o the_o n._n t._n know_v no_o other_o church_n officer_n eph._n 4.11_o now_o apostle_n prophet_n and_o evangelist_n be_v extraordinary_a officer_n as_o the_o learned_a acknowledge_v which_o be_v cease_v long_o ago_o therefore_o the_o rector_n have_v exclude_v the_o bishop_n from_o the_o catalogue_n of_o n._n t._n minister_n he_o do_v not_o find_v any_o express_a commission_n give_v to_o these_o elder_n 41._o p._n 41._o for_o exercise_v the_o several_a supreme_a act_n of_o power_n and_o authority_n such_o as_o he_o note_v in_o the_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n 1._o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v not_o where_o express_o call_v bishop_n but_o timothy_n be_v express_o call_v a_o evangelist_n he_o that_o plead_v for_o a_o express_a commission_n shall_v produce_v such_o a_o one_o constitute_v timothy_n and_o titus_n diocesan_n bishop_n which_o he_o will_v never_o be_v able_a to_o do_v 2._o these_o elder_n be_v command_v to_o govern_v the_o flock_n and_o to_o perform_v the_o duty_n of_o bishop_n and_o consequent_o be_v entrust_v with_o the_o episcopal_a power_n observe_v the_o rector_n way_n of_o argue_v he_o will_v persuade_v we_o that_o timothy_n and_o titus_n who_o be_v not_o where_o call_v bishop_n and_o one_o of_o they_o express_o call_v a_o evangelist_n be_v real_a bishop_n and_o that_o the_o jewish_a elder_n who_o be_v bid_v to_o govern_v or_o feed_v the_o flock_n and_o to_o do_v the_o duty_n of_o bishop_n have_v nothing_o to_o do_v with_o the_o episcopal_a power_n in_o like_a manner_n when_o the_o apostle_n tell_v the_o elder_n of_o ephesus_n that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v make_v they_o bishop_n of_o the_o flock_n to_o feed_v or_o govern_v the_o church_n of_o god_n 28._o god_n act_n 20.17_o 28._o he_o will_v persuade_v we_o these_o be_v no_o bishop_n though_o the_o holy_a ghost_n express_o affirm_v it_o and_o that_o timothy_n who_o be_v express_o command_v to_o do_v the_o work_n of_o a_o evangelist_n be_v bishop_n of_o ephesus_n they_o who_o the_o holy_a ghost_n constitute_v bishop_n must_v be_v no_o bishop_n with_o he_o and_o he_o who_o the_o holy_a ghost_n declare_v to_o be_v a_o evangelist_n must_v pass_v for_o a_o bishop_n he_o must_v pardon_v we_o if_o we_o believe_v these_o express_a testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n before_o his_o ungrounded_a assertion_n chap._n iii_o remark_n upon_o bus_fw-la second_o chapter_n of_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n and_o crete_n the_o apostle_n leave_v the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n in_o the_o presbyter_n this_o establishment_n his_o last_o divine_a perpetual_a act_n 20._o explain_v the_o government_n by_o presbyter_n in_o parity_n never_o alter_v presbytery_n a_o divine_a remedy_n against_o schism_n superior_a bishop_n not_o the_o remedy_n timothy_n no_o diocesan_n bishop_n a_o unfixed_a evangelist_n of_o the_o asian_a angel_n not_o so_o call_v from_o the_o provincial_a guardian_n angel_n ignatius_n his_o bishop_n not_o diocesan_n titus_n no_o diocesan_n bishop_n presbyter_n be_v ruler_n he_o undertake_v to_o show_v that_o st._n paul_n towards_o the_o decline_a part_n of_o his_o life_n 45._o p._n 45._o and_o in_o his_o absence_n from_o the_o church_n do_v not_o commit_v the_o government_n to_o the_o presbyterles_a in_o parity_n but_o appoint_v one_o as_o supreme_a to_o preside_v over_o they_o in_o his_o absence_n and_o by_o consequence_n to_o succeed_v he_o when_o he_o depart_v the_o world_n this_o say_v he_o i_o shall_v demonstrate_v he_o do_v in_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n and_o crete_n and_o by_o a_o reasonable_a consequence_n in_o all_o his_o other_o church_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o
4._o no_o reason_n can_v be_v give_v why_o this_o government_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n shall_v be_v afterward_o change_v the_o rector_n think_v it_o be_v do_v as_o a_o remedy_n against_o the_o schism_n p._n 47._o but_o the_o establishment_n of_o the_o presbytery_n in_o ephesus_n be_v for_o a_o remedy_n against_o schism_n as_o appear_v act_n 20.28_o 29_o 30._o after_o my_o departure_n grievous_a wolf_n shall_v enter_v in_o among_o you_o not_o spare_v the_o flock_n and_o of_o yourselves_o shall_v man_n arise_v this_o he_o mention_n as_o a_o reason_n why_o the_o elder_n of_o ephesus_n shall_v oversee_v the_o flock_n v._o 28_o 31._o this_o remedy_n be_v appoint_v by_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o can_v err_v in_o judgement_n he_o know_v how_o to_o provide_v apt_a and_o effectual_a remedy_n he_o be_v in_o one_o mind_n and_o do_v not_o appoint_v that_o to_o day_n which_o he_o repent_v of_o to_o morrow_n his_o provision_n be_v not_o mere_o prudential_a like_o those_o of_o man_n devise_v to_o who_o future_a event_n be_v wrap_v up_o in_o obscurity_n and_o therefore_o upon_o trial_n of_o their_o aptness_n to_o the_o end_n for_o which_o they_o be_v design_v change_v their_o thought_n concern_v they_o and_o take_v new_a measure_n it_o be_v not_o so_o with_o the_o alwise_a god_n he_o see_v the_o end_n in_o the_o beginning_n and_o effect_n in_o their_o cause_n and_o with_o he_o be_v no_o variableness_n nor_o shadow_n of_o turn_v now_o let_v we_o hear_v what_o the_o rector_n can_v say_v for_o the_o change_n of_o this_o government_n by_o presbyter_n settle_v in_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n he_o promise_v to_o treat_v of_o three_o thing_n 1._o of_o the_o plantation_n and_o government_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n by_o paul_n so_o long_o as_o he_o be_v in_o a_o condition_n to_o manage_v the_o affair_n of_o the_o church_n 2._o he_o will_v show_v the_o last_o order_n he_o take_v about_o the_o government_n of_o this_o church_n of_o ephesus_n in_o his_o absence_n 3._o he_o will_v give_v we_o the_o glory_n of_o it_o unto_o the_o write_n of_o ignatius_n be_v epistle_n as_o to_o the_o first_o we_o agree_v with_o he_o that_o the_o presbyter_n of_o ephesus_n be_v subject_a to_o paul_n and_o good_a reason_n for_o it_o for_o he_o be_v a_o apostle_n infallible_o guide_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n he_o observe_v two_o thing_n from_o act_n 20.28.1_o that_o the_o apostle_n commit_v the_o government_n of_o this_o church_n in_o his_o absence_n unto_o these_o presbyter_n or_o bishop_n for_o i_o will_v suppose_v at_o present_a that_o the_o title_n and_o power_n of_o bishop_n belong_v to_o they_o 1._o here_o be_v a_o plain_a acknowledgement_n of_o our_o hypothesis_n that_o the_o government_n of_o the_o ephesian_a church_n be_v devolve_v upon_o the_o presbyter_n there_o but_o he_o insinuate_v as_o if_o this_o be_v only_o for_o a_o time_n i._n e._n during_o his_o absence_n whereas_o the_o apostle_n intend_v to_o see_v their_o face_n no_o more_o so_o that_o his_o absence_n be_v to_o be_v perpetual_a as_o to_o his_o present_a intention_n at_o least_o and_o consequent_o the_o power_n commit_v to_o these_o presbyter_n be_v perpetual_a 2_o he_o seem_v loath_a to_o call_v they_o bishop_n but_o be_v so_o kind_a as_o to_o suppose_v it_o at_o present_a though_o the_o holy_a ghost_n express_o call_v they_o so_o and_o make_v they_o so_o act_v 20.28_o feed_v the_o stock_n over_o which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n make_v you_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d bishop_n 2_o he_o observe_v from_o this_o scripture_n 47._o p._n 47._o that_o paul_n certain_o foresee_v that_o schism_n will_v arise_v among_o they_o he_o do_v so_o and_o provide_v a_o remedy_n against_o they_o by_o commit_v the_o government_n there_o to_o the_o presbyter_n if_o diocesan_n episcopacy_n have_v be_v the_o remedy_n how_o come_v the_o apostle_n not_o to_o mention_v it_o at_o this_o time_n he_o make_v mention_n of_o the_o disease_n v._o 29._o as_o he_o confess_v and_o why_o not_o of_o the_o remedy_n also_o neither_o here_o nor_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o ephesian_n which_o he_o observe_v be_v write_v to_o give_v a_o check_n to_o their_o schism_n chap._n 4._o that_o epistle_n and_o chapter_n mention_n the_o several_a degree_n of_o minister_n in_o christ_n church_n chap._n 4._o v._n 11._o but_o not_o a_o word_n of_o a_o bishop_n as_o the_o centre_n of_o unity_n in_o the_o whole_a epistle_n nor_o do_v he_o require_v one_o ordinary_a minister_n to_o obey_v another_o either_o in_o this_o epistle_n or_o that_o to_o the_o corinthian_n who_o be_v pester_v with_o schism_n also_o as_o he_o take_v notice_n if_o bishop_n have_v be_v the_o remedy_n the_o apostle_n will_v not_o have_v omit_v mention_v they_o have_v such_o proper_a occasion_n give_v he_o and_o write_v design_o to_o they_o upon_o that_o subject_a we_o will_v reckon_v he_o but_o a_o sorry_a physician_n that_o will_v prescribe_v several_a remedy_n for_o a_o distemper_n and_o omit_v the_o only_a proper_a remedy_n such_o a_o spiritual_a physician_n the_o rector_n make_v the_o apostle_n to_o be_v he_o say_v he_o foresee_v the_o schism_n of_o the_o ephesian_n write_v a_o epistle_n to_o unite_v they_o 47._o p._n 47._o and_o have_v a_o warm_a discovase_n about_o unity_n chap._n 4._o and_o write_v another_o to_o the_o corinthian_n to_o cure_v their_o division_n but_o have_v not_o so_o much_o as_o touch_v upon_o his_o proper_a remedy_n of_o diocesan_n bishop_n there_o be_v a_o like_a warm_a exhortation_n to_o unity_n phil._n 2.1_o 2._o and_o yet_o that_o church_n be_v govern_v by_o bishop_n and_o deacon_n phil._n 1.1_o and_o not_o by_o one_o superior_a bishop_n 2._o the_o second_o thing_n he_o promise_v be_v to_o tell_v we_o 48._o p._n 48._o the_o order_n he_o take_v afterward_o about_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n which_o be_v this_o the_o apostle_n be_v set_v at_o liberty_n and_o return_v back_o from_o italy_n to_o the_o east_n and_o be_v now_o old_a phil._n v._n 9_o and_o find_v that_o faction_n and_o division_n every_o where_o increase_v and_o prevail_v constitute_v timothy_n bishop_n of_o ephesus_n as_o doubtless_o he_o do_v the_o same_o in_o all_o other_o place_n 1_o tim._n 1.3_o 1._o he_o take_v it_o for_o grant_v the_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n be_v write_v after_o paul_n imprisonment_n at_o rome_n which_o i_o deny_v we_o shall_v hear_v his_o proof_n in_o the_o next_o chapter_n which_o we_o will_v there_o consider_v if_o he_o be_v mistake_v in_o this_o point_n of_o chronology_n as_o i_o shall_v prove_v he_o be_v than_o all_o his_o reason_n from_o this_o epistle_n fall_v to_o the_o ground_n 2._o there_o be_v faction_n and_o division_n in_o the_o church_n long_o before_o as_o he_o himself_o confess_v and_o as_o be_v apparent_a from_o 1_o cor._n 3._o why_o have_v not_o the_o apostle_n provide_v this_o remedy_n soon_o to_o have_v prevent_v the_o increase_n and_o prevalence_n of_o they_o a_o distemper_n be_v easy_a prevent_v than_o cure_v if_o division_n increase_v under_o the_o government_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v the_o new_a order_n of_o bishop_n like_o to_o put_v a_o stop_n to_o they_o why_o be_v this_o then_o assign_v as_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o institution_n 3._o 1_o tim._n 1.3_o do_v not_o say_v that_o paul_n constitute_v he_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n it_o be_v agree_v by_o the_o ancient_n that_o st._n john_n the_o apostle_n be_v at_o ephesus_n and_o reside_v there_o for_o a_o considerable_a time_n after_o st._n paul_n departure_n thence_o and_o after_o the_o write_n of_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n eccl._n euse_n hist_o eccl._n iii_o 17._o al._n 18._o iren._n adv_o haer._n iii_o 3_o hierom._n catal._n scrip._n eccl._n eusebius_n upon_o the_o testimony_n of_o irenaeus_n and_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n affirm_v that_o he_o return_v to_o ephesus_n after_o he_o be_v release_v from_o his_o banishment_n at_o patmos_n and_o live_v there_o and_o among_o the_o other_o asian_a church_n until_o trajan_n day_n his_o ordinary_a residence_n be_v at_o ephesus_n as_o eusebius_n and_o clemens_n etc._n etc._n affirm_v if_o st._n john_n keep_v his_o residence_n at_o ephesus_n and_o rule_v that_o church_n as_o he_o do_v other_o church_n of_o asia_n by_o his_o apostolical_a power_n timothy_n can_v not_o be_v the_o supreme_a ruler_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n where_o a_o apostle_n be_v present_a and_o resident_n to_o govern_v his_o superior_a authority_n suspend_v all_o episcopal_a jurisdiction_n so_o that_o according_a to_o the_o rector_n own_o principle_n there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o a_o bishop_n while_o a_o apostle_n can_v oversee_v the_o church_n 4._o he_o give_v not_o the_o least_o proof_n that_o paul_n make_v bishop_n in_o all_o other_o place_n doubtless_o it_o be_v so_o say_v he_o you_o must_v take_v
in_o his_o spirit_n but_o take_v his_o leave_n of_o they_o and_o go_v into_o macedonia_n 2_o cor._n 12.13_o we_o find_v he_o with_o paul_n at_o jerusalem_n gal._n 2.1_o 3._o and_o after_o his_o be_v in_o crete_n the_o apostle_n send_v for_o he_o to_o nicopolis_n titus_n 3.12_o we_o find_v he_o with_o paul_n at_o rome_n whence_o he_o send_v he_o to_o dalmatia_n 2_o tim._n 4.12_o and_o we_o hear_v no_o more_o of_o he_o 3._o evangelist_n be_v subordinate_a to_o the_o apostle_n and_o superior_a to_o presbyter_n eph._n 4.11_o they_o be_v the_o apostle_n colleague_n and_o companion_n and_o their_o authorize_v messenger_n to_o the_o church_n to_o set_v in_o order_n what_o be_v want_v in_o they_o and_o to_o instruct_v admonish_v and_o reprove_v the_o presbyter_n as_o there_o be_v occasion_n 4._o they_o have_v power_n to_o ordain_v minister_n where_o there_o be_v need_n of_o they_o this_o appear_v in_o eusebius_n who_o say_v of_o they_o that_o travel_v far_o from_o home_n they_o perform_v the_o office_n of_o evangelist_n 31._o eccl._n hist._n iii_o 31._o and_o preach_v christ_n to_o such_o as_o hear_v not_o of_o the_o faith_n and_o deliver_v unto_o they_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o holy_a gospel_n with_o great_a application_n when_o they_o have_v lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n in_o certain_a strange_a place_n and_o ordain_v other_o pastor_n and_o commit_v the_o new_a convert_v to_o their_o care_n and_o conduct_v they_o go_v into_o other_o country_n and_o nation_n attend_v with_o the_o favour_n and_o power_n of_o god_n thus_o he_o timothy_n and_o titus_n who_o be_v both_o of_o they_o evangelist_n be_v entrust_v with_o the_o power_n of_o ordain_v we_o have_v already_o prove_v that_o ordinary_a presbyter_n have_v exercise_v this_o power_n much_o more_o may_v evangelist_n who_o be_v extraordinary_a officer_n 5._o evangelist_n be_v temporary_a officer_n in_o though_o church_n and_o be_v long_o since_o cease_v as_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n be_v 6._o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v evangelist_n as_o we_o have_v prove_v and_o therefore_o no_o diocesan_n bishop_n it_o will_v be_v a_o degrade_n a_o extraordinary_a officer_n who_o power_n be_v general_a over_o all_o the_o church_n in_o subordination_n to_o the_o apostle_n to_o make_v a_o ordinary_a officer_n of_o he_o and_o to_o confine_v his_o power_n to_o one_o particular_a church_n it_o be_v like_o the_o degrade_n of_o the_o colonel_n of_o a_o regiment_n to_o be_v the_o captain_n of_o a_o single_a company_n or_o the_o confine_n of_o a_o diocesan_n bishop_n to_o a_o mean_a parochial_a cure_n mr._n g._n and_o some_o other_o will_v own_o they_o be_v evangelist_n and_o unfixed_a at_o first_o but_o that_o the_o apostle_n towards_o his_o latter_a end_n have_v make_v they_o bishop_n and_o that_o they_o be_v such_o when_o he_o write_v his_o epistle_n to_o they_o which_o be_v after_o his_o first_o imprisonment_n at_o rome_n this_o he_o undertake_v to_o prove_v in_o his_o next_o chapter_n chap._n iu._n the_o first_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n be_v write_v before_o paul_n imprisonment_n at_o rome_n acknowledge_v by_o the_o ancient_n and_o by_o the_o learned_a assertor_n of_o episcopacy_n bishop_n hall_n dr._n hammond_n etc._n etc._n deny_v by_o the_o rhemist_n bishop_n pearson_n etc._n etc._n paul_n journey_n to_o macedonia_n 1_o tim._n 1.3_o consider_v jerom_n vindicate_v reason_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n be_v write_v before_o paul_n first_o bond_n the_o second_o epistle_n write_v in_o his_o first_o bond_n a_o objection_n answer_v act_n 20.25_o consider_v one_o and_o the_o lead_a argument_n for_o timothy_n be_v be_v bishop_n of_o ephesus_n 79._o p._n 79._o say_v he_o be_v ground_v on_o 1_o tim._n 1.3_o i_o beseech_v thou_o to_o abide_v still_o at_o ephesus_n when_o i_o go_v to_o macedonia_n 1._o to_o abide_v still_o do_v not_o imply_v a_o continue_a residence_n timothy_n be_v say_v to_o abide_v still_o at_o berea_n where_o he_o make_v but_o a_o short_a stay_n act_n 17.14_o 15._o this_o argument_n will_v as_o soon_o prove_v he_o bishop_n of_o berea_n as_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n 2._o his_o stay_n there_o be_v but_o short_a that_o be_v until_o the_o apostle_n come_v to_o he_o 1_o tim._n 3.14_o and_o 4.13_o mr._n g._n himself_o allow_v in_o p._n 90._o that_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n be_v govern_v by_o presbyter_n under_o paul_n whilst_o he_o be_v vigorous_a and_o active_a and_o have_v opportunity_n to_o oversee_v both_o the_o flock_n and_o the_o elder_n themselves_o the_o apostle_n be_v vigorous_a and_o active_a when_o he_o write_v this_o first_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n and_o he_o intend_v short_o to_o visit_v the_o flock_n and_o elder_n of_o ephesus_n therefore_o by_o his_o own_o confession_n timothy_n can_v not_o be_v bishop_n of_o ephesus_n when_o that_o epistle_n be_v write_v 3._o he_o be_v not_o fix_v as_o resident_n at_o ephesus_n for_o the_o apostle_n afterward_o call_v he_o to_o rome_n 2_o tim._n 4.9_o 21._o and_o send_v tychicus_n the_o evangelist_n to_o ephesus_n we_o do_v not_o read_v that_o timothy_n ever_o return_v to_o ephesus_n again_o thus_o we_o see_v the_o weakness_n of_o his_o lead_a argument_n as_o he_o call_v it_o by_o which_o we_o may_v judge_v of_o the_o rest_n he_o add_v that_o the_o dissenter_n to_o avoid_v the_o argument_n build_v upon_o 1_o tim._n 1.3_o and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o epistle_n say_v that_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n be_v write_v before_o the_o meeting_n at_o miletus_n in_o which_o the_o apostle_n commit_v the_o flock_n to_o the_o elder_n of_o ephesus_n and_o not_o to_o timothy_n act_v 20.17_o 28._o our_o argument_n from_o act_n 20.17_o 28._o hold_n good_a though_o that_o epistle_n shall_v be_v write_v after_o as_o we_o have_v prove_v already_o in_o cap._n 3._o 2._o it_o be_v not_o the_o dissenter_n only_a as_o he_o unfair_o suggest_v that_o say_v that_o this_o epistle_n be_v write_v before_o the_o meeting_n at_o miletus_n it_o be_v the_o general_a and_o prevail_a opinion_n of_o the_o great_a part_n of_o chronologer_n ancient_a and_o modern_a the_o most_o learned_a asserter_n of_o episcopacy_n not_o except_v bishop_n hall_n be_v of_o this_o opinion_n 38._o opinion_n vindic_n p._n 97._o &_o diu._n right_a of_o episcop_n part_n 2d_o p._n 38._o so_o be_v dr._n hammond_n and_o grotius_n lud._n cap●llus_n dr._n lightfoot_n cary_n &c_n &c_n gothofredus_n quote_v athanasius_n baronius_n etc._n etc._n as_o of_o the_o same_o opinion_n the_o rhemist_n be_v sensible_a that_o this_o opinion_n be_v prejudicial_a to_o the_o cause_n of_o episcopacy_n and_o therefore_o they_o say_v though_o not_o positive_o that_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n be_v write_v after_o paul_n first_o imprisonment_n at_o rome_n when_o he_o be_v set_v at_o liberty_n tim._n liberty_n rhem._n test._n arg._n in_o 1_o tim._n they_o be_v follow_v by_o bishop_n pearson_n and_o by_o mr._n g._n only_o with_o this_o difference_n that_o the_o seminary_n at_o rheims_n deliver_v themselves_o more_o modest_o than_o the_o rector_n do_v they_o say_v it_o seem_v so_o the_o rector_n say_v he_o have_v demonstrate_v it_o one_o that_o have_v not_o read_v bishop_n pearson_n will_v think_v the_o rector_n very_o ingenuous_a in_o acknowledge_v that_o he_o be_v behold_v to_o the_o bishop_n for_o what_o he_o pretend_v to_o say_v on_o paul_n journey_n to_o macedonia_n mention_v in_o 1_o tim._n 1.3_o that_o miracle_n of_o his_o time_n say_v he_o 80._o p._n 80._o mean_v bishop_n pearson_n in_o his_o annal_n paulini_n have_v give_v we_o a_o plain_a account_n and_o proof_n thereof_o all_o that_o i_o pretend_v unto_o be_v to_o build_v on_o his_o foundation_n and_o to_o enlarge_v on_o what_o that_o excellent_a prelate_n have_v demonstrate_v in_o a_o few_o word_n thus_o the_o rector_n i_o will_v not_o dispute_v whether_o the_o learned_a bishop_n be_v the_o miracle_n of_o his_o time_n if_o he_o be_v miracle_n be_v grow_v very_o common_a in_o this_o last_o age_n for_o the_o bishop_n have_v many_o equal_n who_o learned_a work_n be_v nothing_o inferior_a to_o he_o i_o dare_v affirm_v that_o our_o rector_n be_v no_o miracle_n in_o architecture_n for_o he_o build_v very_o sorry_o on_o the_o bishop_n foundation_n instead_o of_o raise_v a_o superstructure_n he_o have_v rather_o disturb_v the_o foundation_n the_o learned_a bishop_n discourse_v distinct_o and_o clear_o the_o rector_n confuse_o and_o dark_o he_o refer_v to_o dr._n pearson_n annal_n paulini_n and_o pretend_v to_o enlarge_v on_o what_o the_o bishop_n have_v demonstrate_v in_o few_o word_n but_o take_v no_o notice_n of_o the_o bishop_n enlarge_n on_o that_o argument_n in_o his_o dissertation_n whence_o he_o borrow_a what_o he_o pretend_v to_o say_v on_o paul_n journey_n to_o macedonia_n but_o will_v have_v his_o reader_n believe_v the_o enlargement_n be_v his_o own_o see_v pear_n dissert_n
of_o he_o phil._n 2.23_o as_o he_o be_v age_v he_o live_v in_o constant_a expectation_n of_o death_n as_o he_o be_v a_o prisoner_n in_o danger_n of_o be_v make_v a_o sacrifice_n he_o can_v not_o but_o think_v his_o dissolution_n be_v approach_v 2_o cor._n 5.2_o 3_o 4._o act_n 20.23_o be_v strike_v in_o year_n and_o waste_v with_o indefatigable_a labour_n and_o hard_a suffering_n and_o in_o expectation_n of_o the_o fiery_a trial_n he_o may_v well_o say_v he_o have_v finish_v his_o course_n 2_o tim._n 4.7_o but_o yet_o he_o do_v not_o expect_v to_o die_v very_o sudden_o for_o he_o send_v a_o letter_n from_o rome_n to_o timothy_n at_o or_o near_o ephesus_n to_o desire_v he_o to_o come_v to_o he_o before_o winter_n 2_o tim._n 4.21_o it_o will_v require_v a_o considerable_a time_n to_o send_v a_o letter_n from_o rome_n to_o ephesus_n and_o for_o timothy_n to_o return_v from_o ephesus_n to_o rome_n and_o to_o take_v mark_n with_o he_o who_o it_o shall_v seem_v be_v at_o corinth_n all_o this_o can_v not_o be_v do_v under_o three_o or_o four_o month_n and_o perhaps_o a_o long_a time_n consider_v the_o several_a wind_n that_o be_v necessary_a for_o such_o a_o voyage_n have_v paul_n be_v under_o a_o sentence_n of_o death_n at_o this_o time_n he_o can_v not_o have_v make_v a_o appointment_n for_o timothy_n to_o come_v unto_o he_o at_o a_o distant_a time_n prisoner_n in_o constant_a expectation_n of_o death_n do_v not_o use_v to_o make_v appointment_n for_o a_o remote_a time_n to_o come_v thus_o we_o have_v vindicated_n the_o ancient_n and_o receive_a opinion_n that_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n be_v write_v before_o paul_n imprisonment_n at_o rome_n and_o have_v also_o prove_v that_o the_o second_o epistle_n to_o he_o be_v write_v in_o his_o first_o bond_n and_o therefore_o the_o journey_n to_o macedonia_n mention_v in_o 1_o tim._n 1.3_o must_v be_v that_o in_o act_n 20.1_o 2._o our_o argument_n then_o hold_v good_a that_o timothy_n be_v no_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n because_o he_o be_v no_o bishop_n there_o when_o the_o first_o epistle_n be_v write_v to_o he_o for_o paul_n commit_v the_o whole_a government_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n unto_o the_o presbyter_n of_o it_o after_o the_o write_n of_o that_o epistle_n and_o at_o a_o time_n when_o timothy_n be_v present_a or_o not_o far_o off_o act_n 20.4.17_o 18_o 28._o and_o when_o the_o apostle_n know_v he_o shall_v never_o see_v their_o face_n more_o act_v 20.25_o to_o this_o last_o scripture_n the_o rector_n oppose_v two_o thing_n 1._o he_o correct_v the_o translation_n and_o say_v it_o shall_v be_v render_v i_o know_v that_o you_o shall_v no_o more_o see_v my_o face_n all_o of_o you_o 107._o p._n 107._o it_o be_v in_o no_o wise_a probable_a that_o all_o of_o they_o see_v his_o face_n any_o more_o death_n and_o other_o casualty_n will_v doubtless_o hinder_v it_o the_o elder_n to_o who_o he_o speak_v those_o word_n we_o may_v presume_v understand_v paul_n meaning_n a_o little_a better_o than_o the_o rector_n they_o all_o weep_v sore_o and_o sorrow_v most_o of_o all_o for_o the_o word_n which_o he_o speak_v that_o they_o shall_v see_v his_o face_n no_o more_o act_v 20.37_o 38._o the_o word_n all_o of_o you_o be_v here_o omit_v which_o spoil_v the_o parson_n gloss_n it_o can_v be_v imagine_v they_o will_v all_o have_v weep_v so_o passionate_o have_v they_o expect_v to_o have_v see_v he_o again_o it_o be_v pity_n but_o our_o critical_a author_n have_v be_v there_o to_o explain_v paul_n word_n and_o to_o mitigate_v their_o ill_a ground_a sorrow_n by_o tell_v they_o they_o shall_v see_v his_o face_n again_o though_o perhaps_o some_o of_o they_o may_v die_v before_o he_o come_v again_o but_o he_o himself_o be_v sensible_a of_o the_o impertinency_n of_o this_o new_a criticism_n and_o therefore_o add_v that_o he_o will_v not_o insist_v on_o it_o 2._o when_o paul_n say_v 108._o p._n 108._o he_o know_v they_o shall_v see_v his_o face_n no_o more_o it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o a_o conjectural_a knowledge_n only_o as_o he_o say_v 1._o it_o be_v enough_o to_o confirm_v our_o argument_n that_o he_o think_v he_o shall_v see_v their_o face_n no_o more_o it_o be_v undeniable_a he_o have_v no_o hope_n of_o see_v they_o again_o and_o will_v not_o be_v want_v to_o settle_v the_o government_n of_o this_o church_n at_o this_o time_n and_o it_o be_v as_o undeniable_a he_o settle_v the_o government_n in_o the_o presbyter_n and_o not_o in_o a_o diocesan_n bishop_n act_v 20.17_o 28._o the_o assertor_n of_o episcopacy_n and_o among_o other_o mr._n g._n say_v that_o the_o apostle_n settle_v the_o government_n by_o bishop_n when_o they_o be_v leave_v the_o church_n and_o can_v not_o oversee_v they_o any_o long_o this_o be_v the_o case_n here_o the_o apostle_n be_v leave_v the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n without_o any_o thought_n of_o see_v it_o again_o and_o at_o this_o time_n commit_v the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n to_o the_o presbyter_n nor_o be_v this_o constitution_n temporary_a or_o prudential_n but_o divine_a act_v 20.17_o 28._o it_o be_v a_o appointment_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n take_v heed_n to_o yourselves_o and_o the_o stock_n say_v the_o apostle_n over_o which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n make_v you_o bishop_n to_o feed_v the_o church_n of_o god_n but_o of_o this_o we_o have_v speak_v before_o 2._o paul_n do_v not_o use_v to_o express_v himself_o so_o positive_o when_o he_o speak_v conjectural_o it_o will_v look_v like_o rashness_n if_o not_o worse_o in_o any_o of_o we_o to_o say_v positive_o i_o know_v i_o shall_v never_o see_v such_o a_o place_n or_o people_n and_o afterward_o to_o excuse_v it_o by_o say_v it_o be_v only_o a_o conjectural_a knowledge_n the_o holy_a apostle_n do_v not_o use_v lightness_n in_o his_o speech_n 2_o cor._n 1.17_o 18._o he_o say_v in_o act_n 20.29_o i_o know_v that_o grievous_a wolf_n shall_v enter_v in_o among_o you_o be_v this_o also_o a_o conjectural_a knowledge_n if_o this_o be_v a_o certain_a knowledge_n as_o it_o be_v evident_a by_o the_o event_n it_o be_v why_o shall_v we_o not_o understand_v ver_fw-la 25._o of_o a_o certain_a knowledge_n 3._o in_o the_o form_n of_o ordain_v priest_n the_o word_n be_v thus_o render_v and_o now_o behold_v i_o be_o sure_a that_o henceforth_o yea_o all_o through_o who_o i_o have_v go_v preach_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n shall_v see_v my_o face_n no_o more_o 1684._o more_o form_n of_o ordain_v pr._n lond._n edit_n for_o bl._n pawlet_n 1684._o 4._o it_o have_v not_o be_v yet_o prove_v that_o paul_n be_v at_o ephesus_n after_o this_o time_n one_o will_v expect_v a_o very_a clear_a proof_n that_o he_o be_v afterward_o there_o from_o those_o that_o dare_v charge_v the_o apostle_n with_o rashness_n in_o his_o expression_n all_o the_o proof_n we_o have_v be_v but_o a_o qualify_a promise_n of_o visit_v macedonia_n and_o coloss_n again_o phil._n 2.24_o philem_n 22._o 1._o but_o what_o be_v this_o to_o ephesus_n here_o be_v not_o a_o promise_n of_o see_v the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n again_o it_o will_v be_v say_v it_o be_v likely_a he_o do_v i_o say_v it_o be_v more_o likely_a he_o do_v not_o because_o he_o himself_o say_v he_o know_v he_o shall_v never_o see_v they_o again_o 2._o he_o do_v not_o positive_o promise_v to_o see_v macedonia_n and_o coloss_n again_o phil._n 2.24_o philem_n 22._o i_o trust_v etc._n etc._n here_o he_o speak_v more_o doubtful_o and_o not_o so_o positive_o as_o in_o act_n 20.25_o i_o know_v etc._n etc._n this_o gentleman_n way_n of_o argue_v be_v very_o singular_a when_o the_o apostle_n speak_v doubtful_o i_o trust_v he_o be_v sure_a he_o perform_v but_o when_o he_o speak_v positive_o i_o know_v he_o be_v sure_a he_o be_v mistake_v he_o expound_v his_o conjectural_a expression_n for_o absolute_a and_o his_o absolute_a expression_n for_o conjectural_a i_o overlook_v his_o confident_a triumph_n and_o weak_a reflection_n with_o which_o he_o stuff_v the_o conclude_a page_n of_o this_o chapter_n as_o have_v nothing_o of_o argument_n in_o they_o and_o therefore_o not_o worthy_a my_o notice_n i_o will_v follow_v he_o to_o his_o next_o chapter_n which_o treat_v chap._n v._o of_o evangelist_n whether_o they_o be_v fix_v neg._n act_v 21.8_o consider_v timothy_n and_o titus_n unfixed_a hilarius_n his_o account_n of_o evangelist_n eusebius_n testimony_n vindicate_v mark_v no_o fix_a evangelist_n chrysostom_n account_n of_o evangelist_n agree_v with_o eusebius_n this_o species_n of_o church_n officer_n say_v he_o 113._o p._n 113._o be_v speak_v of_o but_o thrice_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n act_n 21.8_o eph._n 4.11_o 2_o tim._n 4.5_o the_o office_n and_o work_n be_v speak_v of_o in_o many_o place_n but_o the_o name_n only_o in_o three_o place_n it_o be_v
agree_v by_o the_o learned_a that_o those_o who_o be_v call_v the_o apostle_n fellow-worker_n and_o be_v send_v by_o they_o as_o their_o messenger_n to_o the_o church_n to_o supply_v their_o absence_n be_v evangelist_n this_o be_v acknowledge_v by_o mr._n g._n p._n 118._o where_o he_o speak_v of_o itinerant_a evangelist_n we_o agree_v with_o he_o 113._o p._n 113._o that_o evangelist_n be_v in_o dignity_n and_o power_n next_o to_o prophet_n and_o above_o all_o other_o church_n officer_n he_o proceed_v to_o give_v we_o a_o description_n of_o a_o evangelist_n ibid._n ibid._n it_o appear_v say_v he_o from_o 2_o tim._n 4.5_o that_o a_o evangelist_n be_v one_o entrust_v by_o the_o apostle_n with_o the_o government_n of_o some_o church_n that_o timothy_n be_v a_o evangelist_n and_o that_o titus_n therefore_o be_v another_o evangelist_n for_o it_o have_v be_v demonstrate_v already_o cap._n 2._o that_o all_o the_o supreme_a power_n of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n be_v commit_v to_o they_o in_o their_o respective_a church_n the_o meaning_n of_o this_o paragraph_n be_v that_o evangelist_n be_v diocesan_n bishop_n for_o he_o make_v timothy_n the_o evangelist_n that_o be_v the_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n and_z titus_n the_o evangelist_n or_o bishop_n of_o crete_n it_o be_v well_o he_o own_v timothy_n and_o titus_n to_o be_v evangelist_n it_o be_v as_o much_o as_o we_o desire_v ay_o but_o evangelist_n and_o bishop_n be_v the_o same_o to_o which_o i_o answer_v 1._o few_o or_o none_o of_o his_o judicious_a brethren_n will_v subscribe_v to_o this_o new_a notion_n of_o evangelist_n by_o which_o he_o evident_o give_v up_o the_o whole_a cause_n when_o he_o happen_v now_o and_o then_o to_o answer_v the_o title_n of_o his_o book_n which_o be_v tentamen_fw-la novum_n by_o advance_v some_o new_a notion_n he_o weak_o betray_v the_o cause_n he_o pretend_v strong_o to_o defend_v 2._o he_o own_v evangelist_n to_o be_v a_o species_n of_o church_n officer_n distinct_a from_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n according_a to_o eph._n 4.11_o and_o consequent_o he_o deny_v the_o diocesan_n bishop_n to_o be_v the_o pastor_n of_o their_o respective_a church_n i_o doubt_v he_o have_v forget_v the_o prayer_n of_o the_o church_n in_o which_o the_o bishop_n be_v call_v the_o pastor_n of_o the_o flock_n week_n flock_n the_o prayer_n in_o the_o ember_n week_n if_o he_o say_v they_o be_v both_o pastor_n and_o evangelist_n he_o confound_v those_o officer_n who_o the_o apostle_n distinguish_v the_o presbyter_n be_v the_o pastor_n of_o the_o flock_n that_o be_v the_o ordinary_a and_o settle_a ruler_n of_o it_o act_n 17.28_o 1_o pet._n 5.2_o rev._n 2.27_o let_v they_o have_v this_o power_n which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v give_v they_o as_o the_o proper_a bishop_n of_o the_o flock_n and_o when_o he_o have_v prove_v evangelist_n to_o be_v diocesan_n bishop_n we_o will_v ready_o receive_v they_o 3._o dr._n hammond_n say_v that_o the_o pastor_n not_o the_o evangelist_n in_o eph._n 4.11_o be_v the_o bishop_n that_o govern_v particular_a charge_n 4._o i_o have_v full_o answer_v his_o argument_n by_o which_o he_o pretend_v to_o demonstrate_v that_o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v bishop_n of_o ephesus_n and_o crete_n he_o advance_v a_o new_a order_n of_o evangelist_n 115._o p._n 114._o 115._o who_o be_v the_o fix_a governor_n of_o some_o city_n and_o the_o country_n adjacent_a and_o can_v altogether_o allow_v their_o notion_n who_o say_v a_o evangelist_n be_v a_o unsettle_a church-officer_n that_o go_v from_o place_n to_o place_n to_o finish_v the_o church_n begin_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o particular_o to_o ordain_v elder_n among_o they_o and_o yet_o he_o grant_v that_o a_o evangelist_n as_o ravanellus_n express_v it_o ordain_v elder_n oppidatim_o in_o every_o town_n or_o village_n 1._o he_o own_v that_o evangelist_n may_v ordain_v in_o every_o town_n and_o why_o not_o in_o every_o city_n ravanellus_n explain_v his_o oppidatim_fw-la by_o tit._n 1.5_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o every_o city_n but_o he_o wilful_o overlook_v that_o for_o he_o know_v that_o there_o be_v many_o city_n in_o crete_n and_o according_a to_o the_o rule_n that_o every_o city_n must_v have_v a_o bishop_n titus_n must_v be_v archbishop_n of_o crete_n and_o the_o sole_a power_n of_o ordination_n be_v in_o titus_n it_o will_v natural_o follow_v that_o none_o but_o archbishop_n can_v ordain_v andrew_n cretentis_fw-la call_v he_o archbishop_n and_o say_v he_o have_v twelve_o bishop_n under_o he_o 2._o he_o can_v altogether_o allow_v evangelist_n to_o be_v unsettle_a officer_n it_o seem_v he_o do_v in_o part_n allow_v it_o 115._o p._n 115._o it_o be_v too_o bright_a a_o truth_n to_o be_v deny_v but_o he_o endeavour_v to_o obscure_v it_o what_o he_o can_v and_o will_v fain_o persuade_v his_o reader_n that_o evangelist_n be_v fix_v officer_n but_o let_v we_o hear_v his_o proof_n philip_n be_v a_o fix_a evangelist_n because_o luke_n leave_v he_o at_o caesarea_n act_v 8.40_o and_o we_o find_v he_o there_o almost_o twenty_o year_n after_o have_v a_o house_n and_o a_o settle_a family_n act_v 21.8_o 1._o when_o he_o have_v prove_v that_o philip_n reside_v at_o caesarea_n as_o the_o settle_a bishop_n of_o that_o church_n and_o that_o he_o be_v not_o where_o else_o all_o those_o year_n he_o may_v talk_v of_o a_o fix_a evangelist_n 2._o may_v not_o a_o unsettled_a officer_n have_v a_o settle_a family_n which_o he_o may_v visit_v at_o time_n paul_n continue_v two_o year_n at_o ephesus_n act_v 19.10_o a_o year_n and_o a_o half_a at_o corinth_n act_v 18.11_o two_o year_n in_o his_o own_o hire_a house_n at_o rome_n act_v 28.30_o be_v he_o therefore_o a_o settle_a or_o fix_a apostle_n 3._o as_o much_o as_o we_o have_v of_o the_o history_n of_o philip_n bespeak_v he_o a_o unsettled_a officer_n we_o find_v he_o in_o samaria_n act_v 8.12_o with_o the_o ethiopian_a eunuch_n in_o the_o way_n from_o jerusalem_n unto_o gaza_n act_v 8.26_o at_o asotus_n and_o preach_v in_o all_o the_o city_n till_o he_o come_v to_o caesarea_n act_v 8.40_o which_o perhaps_o may_v be_v his_o birth-place_n or_o he_o may_v marry_v there_o which_o be_v more_o likely_a because_o we_o read_v of_o four_o daughter_n he_o have_v which_o do_v prophecy_n act_v 21.9_o he_o be_v a_o evangelist_n before_o he_o come_v to_o caesarea_n 68_o caesarea_n j._n pear_n lect._n in_o act_n v._o §._o 1._o &_o 5._o p._n 66._o 68_o for_o he_o preach_v up_o and_o down_o by_o virtue_n of_o a_o extraordinary_a call_n act_v 8.6_o 7_o 26_o 39_o and_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v imagine_v he_o lay_v aside_o the_o office_n of_o a_o evangelist_n after_o his_o marriage_n and_o therefore_o luke_n testify_v concern_v he_o that_o although_o he_o be_v marry_v and_o have_v a_o settle_a family_n he_o be_v a_o evangelist_n a_o unsettled_a extraordinary_a officer_n still_o act_v 21.8_o 9_o 10._o he_o can_v not_o produce_v any_o ancient_a author_n that_o make_v he_o bishop_n of_o caesarea_n eusebius_n say_v he_o dye_v at_o hierapolis_n 1569._o hierapolis_n euseb_n hist_o iii_o 25._o edit_fw-la lovan_n 1569._o his_o other_o proof_n from_o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v fix_v or_o settle_a evangelist_n we_o consider_v before_o and_o it_o be_v petitio_fw-la principii_fw-la i_o will_v add_v this_o 1._o all_o that_o he_o say_v to_o prove_v they_o fix_v officer_n of_o ephesus_n and_o crete_n depend_v upon_o his_o supposition_n that_o the_o epistle_n to_o they_o be_v write_v after_o paul_n first_o bond_n at_o rome_n which_o i_o have_v disprove_v with_o respect_n to_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n and_o it_o be_v confess_v by_o all_o that_o this_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n and_o the_o epistle_n to_o titus_n be_v write_v about_o the_o same_o time_n the_o epistle_n to_o titus_n be_v write_v when_o paul_n be_v in_o macedonia_n design_v to_o winter_n in_o nicopolis_n tit._n 3.12_o he_o promise_v to_o send_v tychicus_n or_o artemas_n unto_o titus_n the_o former_a of_o these_o two_o be_v with_o paul_n in_o macedonia_n and_o afterward_o accompany_v he_o into_o asia_n act_v 20.4_o therefore_o this_o epistle_n be_v write_v before_o paul_n first_o imprisonment_n at_o rome_n 2._o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v no_o resident_a evangelist_n of_o ephesus_n and_o crete_n for_o the_o apostle_n call_v they_o both_o away_o he_o call_v titus_n to_o nicopolis_n from_o crete_n tit._n 3.12_o which_o be_v a_o evidence_n he_o be_v to_o make_v but_o a_o short_a stay_n there_o to_o set_v in_o order_n the_o thing_n that_o be_v want_v tit._n 1.5_o which_o when_o he_o have_v do_v he_o must_v attend_v the_o apostle_n as_o he_o have_v do_v before_o according_o he_o go_v to_o paul_n to_o nicopolis_n and_o be_v his_o companion_n and_o messenger_n to_o several_a church_n and_o at_o last_o be_v send_v by_o he_o to_o dalmatia_n 2_o tim._n 4.10_o and_o we_o hear_v no_o
in_o a_o narrow_a orb_n than_o the_o apostle_n who_o messenger_n and_o minister_n they_o be_v and_o by_o who_o appointment_n their_o motion_n be_v guide_v and_o limit_v that_o this_o be_v chrysostoms_n meaning_n appear_v 1._o from_o the_o instance_n of_o aquila_n and_o priscilla_n which_o he_o give_v these_o be_v evangelist_n with_o chrysostom_n now_o these_o do_v remove_v from_o one_o place_n to_o another_o from_o rome_n to_o corinth_n this_o remove_n be_v occasion_v by_o a_o edict_n of_o claudius_n act_v 18.1_o 2._o some_o time_n after_o they_o remove_v with_o paul_n to_o ephesus_n ver_fw-la 18._o doubtless_o by_o paul_n appointment_n as_o other_o evangelist_n do_v thus_o we_o see_v chrysostom_n evangelist_n do_v go_v up_o and_o down_o but_o not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d every_o where_n at_o their_o own_o pleasure_n as_o the_o apostle_n do_v who_o have_v no_o superior_n to_o direct_v their_o motion_n but_o the_o evangelist_n remove_v under_o the_o conduct_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o apostle_n be_v immedinte_o under_o the_o conduct_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o go_v about_o every_o where_o whither_o the_o spirit_n guide_v they_o the_o evangelist_n be_v under_o the_o conduct_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o go_v about_o also_o but_o only_o to_o such_o place_n and_o service_n as_o the_o apostle_n direct_v they_o priscilla_n a_o woman_n be_v a_o evangelist_n in_o chrysostom_n 18.22_o chrysostom_n see_v act_n 18.22_o i_o hope_v mr._n g._n will_v not_o make_v a_o settle_a church_n officer_n that_o be_v a_o bishop_n of_o she_o for_o a_o evangelist_n and_o a_o bishop_n be_v the_o same_o with_o he_o chrysostom_n here_o seem_v to_o confess_v that_o woman_n go_v about_o to_o communicate_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christianity_n to_o the_o woman_n to_o who_o the_o man_n have_v not_o access_n in_o the_o eastern_a country_n the_o same_o be_v affirm_v by_o clement_n of_o alexandria_n who_o think_v the_o sister_n mention_v in_o 1_o cor._n 9.5_o minister_v unto_o the_o woman_n who_o keep_v at_o home_n by_o who_o the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o lord_n may_v enter_v into_o the_o apartment_n of_o the_o woman_n without_o reprehension_n or_o evil_a suspicion_n 79._o suspicion_n clem._n alex_n strom._n iii_o vid._n constit_fw-la apost_n iii_o 15._o conc._n laod._n can._n xi_o epiph._n haer_fw-mi 79._o 2._o chrysostom_n do_v not_o reckon_v timothy_n and_o titus_n among_o evangelist_n but_o among_o the_o pastor_n or_o fix_a officer_n who_o he_o make_v inferior_a to_o those_o that_o go_v up_o and_o down_o and_o evangelize_v i._n e._n the_o evangelist_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o eph._n 4._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d edit_fw-la donas_fw-la veron_n he_o call_v timothy_n and_o titus_n fix_v pastor_n according_a to_o the_o receive_a opinion_n of_o his_o age_n but_o he_o right_o distinguish_v between_o evangelist_n and_o pastor_n and_o make_v the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o evangelist_n to_o be_v the_o same_o with_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o these_o that_o go_v about_o preach_v the_o gospel_n thus_o after_o all_o the_o noise_n and_o clamour_n which_o mr._n g._n have_v make_v its_o evident_a that_o chrysostom_n agree_v with_o eusebius_n in_o his_o notion_n of_o evangelist_n their_o calling_n timothy_n and_o titus_n bishop_n do_v not_o affect_v we_o who_o make_v the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o rule_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o not_o the_o sentiment_n of_o any_o fallible_a men._n we_o have_v prove_v from_o scripture_n that_o they_o be_v evangelist_n and_o not_o diocesan_n bishop_n eusebius_n say_v only_o 4._o hist._n iii_o 4._o it_o be_v report_v that_o timothy_n be_v the_o first_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n and_o he_o ingenious_o acknowledge_v that_o they_o have_v no_o certainty_n who_o succeed_v the_o apostle_n in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n plant_v by_o they_o those_o only_o except_v who_o be_v mention_v in_o paul_n epistle_n it_o be_v fit_a therefore_o we_o shall_v be_v determine_v in_o this_o point_n by_o the_o write_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n it_o be_v well_o observe_v by_o the_o learned_a bishop_n of_o worcester_n that_o the_o first_o that_o call_v timothy_n bishop_n of_o ephesus_n be_v leontius_n bishop_n of_o magnesia_n in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n this_o be_v four_o hundred_o year_n after_o in_o which_o time_n record_v be_v lose_v and_o bishop_n be_v after_o settle_v there_o no_o doubt_n they_o will_v begin_v the_o succession_n with_o timothy_n because_o of_o his_o employment_n there_o once_o for_o settle_v the_o church_n thereabouts_o he_o add_v that_o this_o be_v not_o the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n but_o of_o a_o single_a person_n deliver_v his_o private_a opinion_n in_o it_o and_o that_o by_o the_o by_o too_o and_o he_o be_v contradict_v in_o the_o face_n of_o the_o council_n for_o say_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n have_v all_o of_o they_o be_v ordain_v upon_o the_o place_n see_v more_o in_o that_o learned_a author_n who_o judicious_o confute_v their_o opinion_n who_o make_v timothy_n bishop_n of_o ephesus_n dr._n stillingfleet_n iren._n p._n 302_o 303._o the_o father_n call_v the_o apostle_n bishop_n which_o all_o grant_v they_o be_v not_o in_o a_o proper_a sense_n epiphanius_n say_v that_o peter_n and_o paul_n be_v both_o of_o they_o apostle_n and_o bishop_n at_o rome_n epiph._n haeres_fw-la xxvii_o the_o father_n therefore_o when_o they_o call_v apostle_n or_o apostolical_a man_n bishop_n speak_v in_o the_o language_n of_o their_o time_n and_o be_v not_o to_o be_v take_v in_o a_o strict_a sense_n have_v go_v through_o his_o book_n and_o discover_v the_o fallacy_n ot_fw-mi his_o reason_n it_o be_v needless_a to_o take_v notice_n of_o his_o last_o chapter_n which_o he_o call_v a_o answer_n to_o j._n oh_o plea_n in_o which_o there_o be_v scarce_o any_o thing_n which_o have_v not_o be_v consider_v already_o yet_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o the_o more_o ignorant_a reader_n i_o will_v make_v some_o short_a reply_n to_o his_o answer_n chap._n vi_o of_o parish-discipline_n presbyter_n have_v tower_n of_o government_n 1._o j._n oh_o first_o argument_n for_o ordination_n by_o presbyter_n viz._n the_o identity_n of_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n acknowledge_v 1_o tim._n 5.17_o consider_v 1_o tim._n 1.3_o do_v not_o prove_v timothy_n bishop_n of_o ephesus_n dr._n whittaker_n vindicated_n ignatius_n one_o altar_n explain_v the_o extent_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n a_o objection_n answer_v rev._n 5.11_o vindicated_n br._n lightfoot'_v notion_n of_o angel_n vindicated_n 2._o j._n oh_o second_o and_o three_o argument_n for_o ordination_n by_o presbyter_n vindicated_n presbyter_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n ignatius_n and_o ireneus_fw-la vindicated_n more_o testimony_n to_o the_o same_o effect_n he_o charge_v j._n o._n with_o reflect_v on_o episcopal_a ordination_n 122._o p._n 122._o but_o give_v no_o instance_n of_o any_o such_o reflection_n which_o doubtless_o he_o will_v have_v do_v if_o he_o have_v be_v able_a let_v this_o pass_n among_o his_o other_o calumny_n his_o crambe_n about_o jerom_n and_o ignatius_n have_v be_v consider_v before_o 123._o p._n 123._o it_o be_v endless_a to_o tire_v my_o reader_n and_o myself_o with_o nauseous_a repetition_n as_o often_o as_o this_o author_n give_v occasion_n he_o fall_v foul_o upon_o j._n o._n for_o say_v that_o parish-priest_n have_v no_o power_n of_o discipline_n 126._o p._n 125_o 126._o which_o i_o have_v prove_v they_o have_v power_n of_o discipline_n say_v he_o because_o all_o the_o canon_n or_o law_n of_o the_o church_n be_v make_v by_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o well_o as_o by_o the_o bishop_n 1._o their_o executive_a power_n be_v the_o same_o with_o their_o legislative_a power_n that_o be_v none_o at_o all_o the_o act_n of_o convocation_n be_v no_o law_n till_o they_o be_v confirm_v in_o parliament_n 2._o have_v every_o parish-priest_n a_o power_n of_o make_v church-law_n if_o not_o this_o instance_n be_v impertinent_o bring_v in_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o parish-priest_n have_v power_n of_o discipline_n if_o it_o be_v say_v they_o make_v law_n by_o their_o representative_n so_o do_v the_o people_n of_o england_n by_o their_o representative_n in_o parliament_n do_v it_o follow_v therefore_o that_o every_o freeholder_n have_v the_o power_n of_o govern_v though_o the_o truth_n be_v the_o convocation_n be_v not_o a_o just_a representative_a of_o the_o clergy_n for_o in_o the_o convocation_n for_o the_o province_n of_o canterbury_n there_o be_v but_o 44_o clerk_n represent_v the_o clergy_n the_o bishop_n dean_n prebendary_n and_o arch-deacon_n make_v up_o 122._o the_o arch-deacon_n who_o be_v the_o bishop_n creature_n as_o be_v choose_v sole_o by_o they_o are_z 10_o in_o number_n more_o than_o the_o clerk_n so_o that_o the_o clerk_n be_v little_o more_o than_o cipher_n in_o convocation_n there_o be_v enough_o in_o the_o low_a house_n to_o out-vote_n they_o beside_o a_o
tutamen_fw-la evangelicum_fw-la or_o a_o defence_n of_o scripture-ordination_a against_o the_o exception_n of_o t._n g._n in_o a_o book_n entitle_v tentamen_fw-la novum_n prove_v that_o ordination_n by_o presbyter_n be_v valid_a timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v no_o diocesan_n ruler_n the_o presbyter_n of_o ephesus_n be_v the_o apostle_n successor_n in_o the_o government_n of_o that_o church_n and_o not_o timothy_n the_o first_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n be_v write_v before_o the_o meeting_n at_o miletus_n the_o ancient_n waldenses_n have_v no_o diocesan_n bishop_n etc._n etc._n by_o the_o author_n of_o the_o plea_n for_o scripture-ordination_a confirmatio_fw-la juvenum_fw-la clericorum_fw-la ordinatio_fw-la locorum_fw-la consecratio_fw-la reservatur_fw-la papae_fw-la &_o episcopis_fw-la propter_fw-la cupiditatem_fw-la lucri_fw-la temporalis_fw-la &_o honoris_fw-la art_n 28._o doctr._fw-la joh._n wiclef_n in_o conc._n constantiens_fw-la london_n print_v for_o zachary_n whitworth_n bookseller_n in_o manchester_n 1697._o the_o preface_n j._n o._n publish_a some_o year_n since_o a_o plea_n for_o scripture-ordination_a prove_v by_o scripture_n and_o antiquity_n that_o ordination_n by_o presbyter_n without_o bishop_n be_v valid_a several_a hand_n be_v say_v to_o be_v at_o work_n prepare_v remark_n upon_o it_o at_o length_n after_o near_o three_o year_n silence_n come_v forth_o a_o sort_n of_o answer_n by_o one_o mr._n t._n g._n rector_n of_o b._n in_o lancashire_n a_o author_n well_o know_v in_o his_o country_n by_o some_o prerogative_n sermon_n which_o he_o print_v some_o year_n since_o i._o he_o front_n his_o english_a book_n with_o a_o latin_a title_n and_o call_v it_o tentamen_fw-la novum_n that_o be_v a_o new_a trial_n of_o skill_n here_o be_v a_o implicit_a confession_n of_o a_o baffle_a cause_n he_o dare_v not_o trust_v to_o the_o old_a argument_n for_o episcopacy_n but_o be_v glad_a to_o betake_v himself_o to_o new_a shift_n it_o be_v a_o desperate_a cause_n that_o needs_o new_a art_n to_o support_v it_o the_o plain_a english_a of_o tentamen_n novum_n be_v this_o gentleman_n i_o be_o very_o sensible_a the_o cause_n i_o plead_v for_o can_v stand_v on_o its_o old_a foundation_n therefore_o i_o will_v make_v a_o new_a effort_n and_o try_v whether_o the_o lofty_a fabric_n of_o diocesan_n episcopacy_n may_v not_o be_v support_v on_o the_o slender_n and_o nice_a foundation_n of_o a_o new_a point_n of_o chronology_n if_o this_o fail_v the_o cause_n be_v lose_v however_o his_o title_n look_v a_o little_a modest_a but_o a_o man_n of_o assurance_n can_v be_v long_o conceal_v under_o a_o vizard_n for_o in_o the_o very_a next_o word_n he_o call_v his_o argument_n a_o demonstration_n for_o thus_o his_o title-page_n run_v tentamen_fw-la novum_n prove_v that_o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v diocesan_n ruler_n by_o a_o argument_n draw_v frhm_fw-ge the_o time_n of_o st._n paul_n be_v beseech_v timothy_n to_o abide_v at_o ephesus_n and_z leaving_z titus_n at_o crete_n as_o it_o be_v demonstrate_v by_o bishop_n pearson_n a_o doubtful_a attempt_n and_o a_o confident_a demonstration_n be_v something_o inconsistent_a but_o i_o have_v be_v so_o kind_a to_o he_o as_o to_o reconcile_v the_o title-page_n to_o the_o title_n of_o his_o book_n by_o prove_v his_o suppose_a demonstration_n to_o be_v only_o a_o tentamen_n novum_n a_o new_a and_o fruitless_a attempt_n to_o defend_v a_o un-scriptural_a hierarchy_n this_o the_o reader_n way_n find_v in_o the_o three_o and_o four_o chapter_n of_o this_o book_n ii_o i_o desire_v the_o reader_n to_o observe_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o chapter_n chap._n v._n in_o the_o rector_n book_n which_o he_o call_v a_o answer_n to_o j._n oh_o plea_n and_o in_o that_o he_o brief_o touch_v upon_o two_o or_o three_o of_o ten_o argument_n which_o j._n o._n have_v urge_v for_o ordination_n by_o presbyter_n this_o be_v tentamen_fw-la novum_n a_o new_a way_n of_o answer_v book_n he_o pretend_v to_o answer_v j._n oh_o plea_n for_o scripture-ordination_a which_o be_v the_o running-title_n of_o the_o whole_a book_n and_o so_o will_v persuade_v his_o reader_n that_o he_o have_v answer_v the_o whole_a i_o will_v not_o impeach_v his_o candour_n in_o this_o form_n of_o speech_n which_o show_v his_o skill_n in_o a_o rhetorical_a figure_n that_o substitute_n a_o part_n for_o the_o whole_a as_o if_o a_o vainglorious_a captain_n who_o have_v attack_v a_o company_n or_o two_o shall_v say_v by_o a_o romantic_a syneedoche_n he_o have_v beat_v a_o army_n iii_o the_o design_n of_o his_o book_n be_v to_o prove_v that_o mere_a presbyter_n have_v no_o inherent_a power_n of_o ordination_n and_o that_o all_o ordination_n by_o presbyter_n be_v a_o nullity_n this_o notion_n be_v very_o singular_a and_o i_o hope_n have_v but_o few_o patron_n in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n because_o 1._o it_o vn-churche_n all_o the_o reform_a church_n beyond_o sea_n who_o have_v no_o bishop_n of_o the_o english_a species_n and_o by_o this_o gentleman_n principle_n no_o ministry_n no_o sacrament_n and_o consequent_o no_o salvation_n he_o own_v a_o true_a ministry_n in_o the_o popish_a church_n and_o overthrow_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n his_o neighbour_n of_o the_o romish_a communion_n be_v oblige_v to_o con_v he_o thanks_o for_o the_o service_n he_o will_v have_v do_v to_o their_o cause_n against_o the_o reform_a interest_n to_o say_v they_o be_v a_o case_n of_o necessity_n but_o so_o be_v not_o we_o be_v to_o triste_fw-fr as_o j._n o._n have_v prove_v in_o his_o book_n but_o mr._n g._n wise_o pass_v over_o that_o chapter_n as_o if_o it_o be_v not_o there_o 2._o this_o uncharitable_a hypothesis_n contradict_v the_o moderate_a and_o learned_a defender_n of_o episcopacy_n who_o general_o grant_v the_o validity_n of_o ordination_n by_o presbyter_n though_o they_o judge_v it_o irregular_a where_o bishop_n may_v be_v have_v mr._n hooker_n allow_v the_o ordination_n of_o presbyter_n alone_o on_o this_o principle_n that_o the_o church_n can_v give_v they_o power_n for_o according_a to_o he_o all_o power_n be_v original_o in_o the_o whole_a body_n eccl._n polit._n vii_o p._n 37_o 38._o bishop_n downame_n grant_v that_o extraordinary_o in_o case_n of_o necessity_n presbyter_n may_v ordain_v without_o bishop_n and_o give_v this_o reason_n for_o the_o validity_n of_o their_o ordination_n because_o imposition_n of_o hand_n in_o confirmation_n and_o reconciliation_n of_o penitent_n be_v reserve_v to_o bishop_n as_o well_o as_o ordination_n and_o yet_o in_o the_o absence_n of_o bishop_n may_v be_v do_v by_o presbyter_n def._n of_o his_o cons_n serm._n iii_o 3._o p._n 69_o 108._o forbes_n acknowledge_v that_o jure_fw-la divino_fw-la presbyter_n have_v the_o power_n of_o ordain_v as_o well_o as_o of_o i_o reach_v and_o baptise_v though_o they_o must_v use_v it_o under_o the_o bishop_n inspection_n in_o those_o place_n that_o have_v bishop_n iren._n p._n 164._o the_o same_o be_v the_o judgement_n of_o archbishop_n usher_n see_v his_o life_n and_o reduct_v by_o dr._n bernard_n the_o archbishop_n of_o spalleto_n speak_v to_o the_o same_o purpose_n de_fw-fr rep._n eccles_n in_o several_a place_n he_o say_v that_o the_o presbyterial_a order_n have_v always_o the_o key_n annex_v and_o that_o when_o any_o be_v ordain_v presbyter_n the_o key_n be_v give_v he_o and_o jurisdiction_n with_o order_n by_o divine_a right_n lib._n v._o cap._n 12._o p._n 473._o 3._o this_o hypothesis_n condemn_v the_o very_a church_n of_o england_n who_o in_o her_o article_n compose_v by_o the_o arch-bishop_n bishop_n and_o the_o clergy_n in_o convocation_n and_o confirm_v by_o parliament_n 13._o eliz._n 12._o allow_v the_o ordination_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n beyond_o sea_n which_o be_v by_o presbyter_n art_n 23._o those_o we_o ought_v to_o judge_n lawful_o call_v and_o send_v which_o be_v choose_v and_o call_v to_o this_o work_n by_o man_n who_o have_v public_a authority_n give_v unto_o they_o in_o the_o congregation_n to_o call_v and_o send_v minister_n into_o the_o lord_n vineyard_n 5._o vineyard_n vid._n rog._n in_o prop._n 5._o the_o article_n do_v not_o say_v none_o be_v lawful_o call_v but_o by_o bishop_n but_o that_o minister_n ought_v to_o be_v call_v by_o man_n who_o have_v public_a authority_n give_v unto_o they_o in_o the_o congregation_n which_o ordain_v presbyter_n may_v have_v and_o actual_o have_v in_o the_o foreign_a reform_a congregation_n the_o church_n of_o england_n acknowledge_v ordination_n by_o presbyter_n and_o look_v upon_o superior_a bishop_n to_o be_v but_o a_o prudential_a constitution_n of_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n as_o j._n o._n have_v prove_v at_o large_a in_o his_o book_n cap._n ix_o which_o mr._n g._n also_o prudent_o overlook_v we_o may_v presume_v he_o have_v good_a reason_n for_o his_o omission_n the_o ordination_n of_o foreign_a church_n be_v not_o question_v here_o before_o bishop_n laud'_v time_n my_o lord_n bacon_n complain_v of_o it_o as_o a_o new_a thing_n and_o uncommon_a
in_o his_o day_n some_o indiscreet_a person_n say_v he_o have_v be_v tell_v bold_n tell_v fort_n leg._n bold_n in_o open_a preach_n to_o use_v derogatory_n speech_n and_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n abroad_o and_o that_o so_o far_o as_o some_o of_o our_o man_n as_o i_o have_v hear_v ordain_v in_o foreign_a part_n have_v be_v pronounce_v to_o be_v no_o lawful_a minister_n 137._o minister_n resusc_n part_n i._n p._n 137._o the_o jus_fw-la divinum_fw-la of_o episcopacy_n begin_v to_o be_v urge_v about_o that_o time_n to_o the_o great_a joy_n and_o advantage_n of_o the_o popish_a party_n as_o appear_v by_o a_o letter_n to_o a_o popish_a peer_n in_o ireland_n from_o t._n white_n dat._n lond._n feb._n 12._o 1639._o in_o which_o be_v these_o word_n we_o be_v in_o a_o fair_a way_n ever_o long_o to_o assuage_v heresy_n and_o her_o episcopacy_n for_o exetor_n be_v book_n have_v do_v more_o for_o the_o catholic_n than_o they_o can_v have_v do_v themselves_o for_o have_v write_v that_o episcopacy_n in_o office_n and_o jurisdiction_n be_v absolute_o jure_fw-la divino_fw-la which_o be_v the_o old_a quarrel_n between_o our_o bishop_n and_o k._n h._n viii_o during_o his_o heresy_n then_o dispute_v upon_o which_o book_n do_v not_o a_o little_a trouble_n our_o adversary_n who_o declare_v this_o tenent_n of_o exetor_n be_v to_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n this_o letter_n be_v find_v with_o other_o paper_n at_o the_o take_n of_o droghedah_n after_o the_o rout_n of_o remines_n copia_fw-la vera_fw-la ab_fw-la origin_n ut_fw-la fuit_fw-la cum_fw-la hen._n midens_fw-la episcopo_fw-la the_o book_n which_o white_a refer_v to_o be_v bishop_n hall_n divine_a right_n of_o episcopacy_n which_o be_v alter_v and_o put_v into_o the_o form_n in_o which_o we_o now_o have_v it_o by_o archbishop_n laud._n bishop_n hall_n first_o draught_n call_v episcopacy_n a_o ancient_n holy_a and_o divine_a institution_n the_o archbishop_n direct_v he_o to_o alter_v it_o into_o so_o ancient_a as_o that_o it_o be_v of_o divine_a institution_n hall_n define_v episcopacy_n by_o be_v join_v with_o imparity_n and_o superiority_n of_o jurisdiction_n laud_n direct_v he_o to_o define_v it_o by_o a_o distinction_n of_o orden_n hall_n grant_v that_o the_o presbyterian_a government_n may_v be_v of_o use_n where_o episcopacy_n may_v not_o be_v have_v laud_n tell_v he_o this_o be_v of_o dangerous_a consequence_n and_o that_o we_o must_v not_o use_v any_o mince_a term_n nor_o hamper_v ourselves_o for_o fear_n of_o speak_v plain_a truth_n though_o it_o be_v against_o amsterdam_n or_o geneva_n the_o bishop_n of_o exon_n find_v good_a cause_n say_v my_o author_n 402._o author_n dr._n heyl._n life_n of_o a._n bish_n laud_n p._n 400_o 401_o 402._o to_o correct_v the_o obliquity_n of_o his_o opinion_n according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o these_o animadversion_n bishop_n hall_n book_n be_v finish_v the_o archbishop_n read_v it_o over_o with_o care_n and_o diligence_n in_o the_o perusal_n of_o which_o he_o take_v notice_n among_o other_o thing_n that_o the_o strict_a superstition_n of_o the_o sabbatarian_o be_v but_o light_o touch_v at_o whereas_o he_o think_v that_o some_o smart_a plaster_n to_o that_o sore_o may_v have_v do_v no_o harm_n he_o observe_v also_o that_o he_o have_v pass_v by_o this_o point_n viz._n whether_o episcopacy_n be_v a_o order_n or_o a_o degree_n as_o not_o material_a whereas_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o such_o learned_a man_n as_o he_o have_v consult_v it_o be_v the_o main_a ground_n of_o the_o whole_a cause_n and_o therefore_o desire_v he_o to_o alter_v it_o with_o his_o own_o pen._n but_o that_o which_o give_v he_o most_o offence_n be_v that_o the_o title_n of_o antichrist_n be_v positive_o and_o determinate_o bestow_v on_o the_o pope_n which_o he_o allow_v not_o of_o according_a to_o which_o good_a advice_n say_v dr._n heylin_n the_o bishop_n of_o exon_n qualify_v some_o of_o his_o expression_n and_o delete_v other_o ubi_fw-la supr_fw-la p._n 406._o it_o be_v remarkable_a that_o at_o the_o same_o time_n that_o the_o divine_a right_n of_o episcopacy_n begin_v to_o be_v assert_v here_o the_o divine_a right_n of_o the_o christian_a sabbath_n be_v call_v in_o question_n and_o the_o conscientious_a observer_n of_o it_o be_v brand_v with_o the_o odious_a name_n of_o sabbatarian_n at_o the_o same_o time_n also_o the_o old_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n begin_v to_o be_v out_o of_o request_n 4._o this_o hypothesis_n condemn_v the_o late_a episcopal_a church_n of_o scotland_n which_o admit_v ordination_n by_o presbyter_n to_o be_v valid_a as_o dr._n burnet_n bishop_n of_o sarum_n affirm_v thus_o he_o the_o bishop_n of_o scotland_n never_o require_v the_o presbyterian_a minister_n there_o to_o take_v episcopal_a ordination_n they_o require_v they_o only_o to_o come_v and_o act_n with_o they_o in_o church-judicatories_a even_o archbishop_n sharp_a himself_o when_o he_o be_v to_o be_v consecrate_a archbishop_n of_o st._n andrews_n stand_v out_o for_o some_o time_n here_o in_o england_n before_o he_o will_v submit_v to_o take_v priest_n order_n no_o bishop_n during_o my_o stay_n in_o that_o kingdom_n ever_o do_v so_o much_o as_o desire_v any_o of_o the_o presbyterian_o to_o be_v re-ordained_n 1696_o re-ordained_n bishop_n of_o sarum_n be_v vindie_a p._n 84_o 85._o lond._n 1696_o the_o advance_n of_o a_o hypothesis_n so_o favourable_a to_o the_o romish_a church_n so_o destructive_a to_o the_o reform_a church_n abroad_o so_o inconsistent_a with_o the_o article_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n which_o mr._n g._n have_v subscribe_v and_o so_o contrary_a to_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o scottish_a bishop_n and_o the_o repeat_v declaration_n of_o several_a of_o our_o english_a bishop_n may_v tempt_v person_n to_o suspect_v the_o design_n of_o the_o book_n if_o not_o of_o the_o author_n but_o we_o will_v charitable_o hope_v he_o mean_v well_o and_o in_o a_o transport_n of_o zeal_n which_o exclude_v freedom_n of_o thought_n may_v easy_o overlook_a the_o fatal_a consequence_n of_o his_o indigested_a principle_n iv_o he_o tell_v we_o a_o long_a story_n in_o his_o preface_n of_o the_o occasion_n of_o his_o publish_n of_o his_o book_n p._n 1._o and_o 2._o and_o complain_v that_o his_o sermon_n of_o the_o consecration_n and_o holiness_n of_o church_n have_v not_o be_v answer_v by_o the_o dissenter_n and_o say_v he_o there_o be_v good_a reason_n for_o it_o which_o i_o shall_v not_o here_o repeat_v to_o repeat_v a_o thing_n not_o mention_v before_o be_v a_o little_a improper_a i_o confess_v there_o be_v good_a reason_n why_o that_o sermon_n have_v not_o be_v answer_v and_o that_o be_v his_o not_o print_v it_o let_v he_o publish_v it_o and_o he_o shall_v not_o long_o complain_v that_o that_o controversy_n be_v drop_v i_o be_o a_o stranger_n to_o that_o sermon_n but_o i_o expect_v he_o shall_v prove_v the_o consecration_n and_o holiness_n of_o church_n by_o the_o scripture_n for_o he_o allow_v pref._n p._n 13._o that_o we_o ought_v to_o be_v govern_v by_o scripture_n and_o to_o keep_v close_o to_o scripture-practice_n i_o be_o sure_a he_o can_v prove_v it_o from_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o be_v the_o peculiar_a law_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o rule_n of_o christian_n it_o do_v not_o appear_v that_o christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n ever_o consecrate_a any_o place_n of_o worship_n nor_o can_v he_o prove_v it_o from_o the_o old_a testament_n by_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n which_o in_o the_o main_a branch_n of_o it_o be_v more_o ancient_a than_o moses_n and_o expire_v with_o the_o jewish_a temple_n our_o public_a church_n be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v holy_a that_o they_o be_v unclean_a because_o the_o dead_a be_v bury_v there_o he_o that_o touch_v a_o grave_a be_v unclean_a by_o the_o old_a law_n num._n 19.16_o the_o jew_n bury_v their_o dead_a not_o in_o their_o temple_n or_o synagogue_n but_o in_o place_n appropriate_v to_o that_o use_n which_o they_o account_v unclean_a they_o bury_v ordinary_o without_o the_o city_n lu._n 7.12_o 323._o 7.12_o vid._n ligh_v vol._n ii_o p._n 323._o their_o synagogue_n which_o answer_n to_o our_o parish_n church_n be_v not_o consecrate_a as_o the_o temple_n be_v nor_o be_v there_o any_o law_n for_o the_o consecration_n of_o they_o nor_o of_o their_o divinity-school_n which_o they_o judge_v more_o holy_a than_o their_o synagogue_n 2._o synagogue_n maim_v in_o godw._n moses_n and_o aaron_n ii_o 2._o optatus_n observe_v that_o the_o donatist_n begin_v to_o bury_v in_o church_n in_o his_o time_n and_o add_v that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o bury_v in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n 36._o god_n ad_fw-la parm._n lib._n 3._o p._n 36._o he_o seem_v to_o refer_v to_o a_o law_n of_o gratian_n the_o emperor_n as_o baldwin_n observe_v in_o his_o annotation_n on_o optatus_n the_o pure_a age_n of_o
christianity_n have_v no_o consecrate_a temple_n nor_o altar_n vi_o altar_n arnob._n adv_o gent._n lib._n vi_o for_o this_o reason_n caecilius_n in_o minucius_n foelix_fw-la reproach_n the_o christian_n and_o ask_v cur_n nullas_fw-la aras_n habent_fw-la nulla_fw-la templa_fw-la why_o have_v they_o no_o altar_n no_o temple_n no_o visible_a image_n oxon._n image_n min._n foel_n octau._n p._n 29._o oxon._n minucius_n answer_v what_o temple_n can_v i_o build_v unto_o he_o who_o the_o world_n which_o be_v create_v by_o his_o power_n can_v contain_v and_o since_o i_o a_o man_n dwell_v more_o at_o large_a shall_v i_o include_v so_o great_a a_o majesty_n within_o one_o little_a house_n be_v he_o not_o better_a consecrate_a in_o the_o bottom_n of_o our_o heart_n 94._o heart_n ibid._n p._n 94._o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n speak_v clemens_n alexandrinus_n he_o that_o be_v endue_v with_o knowledge_n say_v he_o honour_n god_n that_o be_v gives_z thanks_o for_o the_o knowledge_n of_o a_o upright_a life_n neither_o in_o a_o definitive_a place_n nor_o in_o a_o select_a temple_n nor_o on_o certain_a state_v festival_n but_o through_o his_o whole_a life_n and_o in_o every_o place_n and_o a_o little_a after_o every_o place_n be_v true_o sacred_a in_o which_o we_o converse_v with_o god_n 7._o god_n strom._n 7._o the_o heathen_a build_v their_o temple_n upon_o the_o grave_n or_o ash_n of_o their_o dead_a as_o arnobius_n affirm_v vi_o affirm_v lib._n vi_o for_o this_o reason_n clemens_n alexandrinus_n call_v they_o sepulcher_n you_o call_v they_o say_v he_o by_o the_o specious_a name_n of_o temple_n but_o they_o be_v sepulcher_n that_o be_v sepulcher_n be_v call_v temple_n 〈◊〉_d temple_n in_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d these_o they_o dedicate_v by_o certain_a ceremony_n to_o the_o memory_n of_o their_o decease_a friend_n who_o they_o honour_v as_o god_n and_o account_v their_o temple_n sacred_a as_o caecilius_n speak_v 19_o speak_v vbi_fw-la supr_fw-la p._n 18_o 19_o he_o complain_v that_o the_o christian_n despise_v they_o as_o pollute_v grave_n 25._o grave_n p._n 25._o the_o wise_a sort_n of_o heathen_n acknowledge_v that_o their_o consecrate_a temple_n have_v no_o real_a holiness_n in_o they_o no_o edifice_n say_v plato_n in_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n be_v of_o any_o great_a worth_n or_o true_o holy_a that_o be_v build_v by_o sordid_a mechanic_n v._n mechanic_n strom._n v._n in_o imitation_n of_o they_o the_o christian_n as_o they_o degenerate_v from_o the_o apostolical_a simplicity_n build_v temple_n in_o honour_n of_o depart_a saint_n and_o martyr_n they_o call_v their_o temple_n after_o their_o name_n dedicate_v they_o to_o such_o and_o such_o saint_n in_o memory_n of_o which_o they_o keep_v festival_n which_o give_v occasion_n to_o our_o wake_n we_o have_v some_o instance_n of_o these_o dedication_n and_o festival_n in_o the_o four_o century_n euseb_n vit._n constant_a iv_o nazian_n orat._n in_o nou._n dominic_n no_o instance_n can_v be_v give_v of_o any_o dedication_n of_o temple_n till_o about_o constantine_n time_n and_o the_o dedication_n of_o that_o age_n be_v no_o ceremonious_a consecration_n they_o be_v only_o celebrate_v with_o solemn_a prayer_n praise_n preach_v and_o administer_a the_o eucharist_n which_o be_v the_o state_v duty_n to_o be_v perform_v in_o such_o place_n the_o first_o performance_n of_o these_o religious_a duty_n can_v have_v no_o more_o virtue_n for_o consecration_n of_o the_o place_n than_o the_o continue_a series_n of_o they_o eusebius_n mention_n also_o some_o oration_n in_o commendation_n of_o the_o benefactor_n and_o the_o magnificency_n of_o the_o structure_n which_o be_v deliver_v at_o those_o solemnity_n 45._o solemnity_n vit._n const_n iv_o 45._o these_o have_v no_o consecrate_v virtue_n in_o they_o ceremonious_a consecration_n appropriate_v unto_o bishop_n be_v unknown_a in_o the_o three_o first_o century_n i_o find_v but_o one_o instance_n of_o it_o in_o the_o four_o century_n and_o that_o in_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o which_o superstition_n grow_v fast_o than_o in_o other_o church_n and_o this_o instance_n be_v very_o dubious_a the_o roman_a council_n under_o sylvester_n be_v say_v to_o decree_n that_o no_o presbyter_n presume_v to_o celebrate_v mass_n but_o in_o place_n consecrate_a by_o the_o bishop_n sylvest_n bishop_n epit._n syn._n rom._n sub._n sylvest_n the_o act_n of_o this_o council_n be_v just_o suspect_v to_o be_v spurious_a for_o certain_a the_o twenty_o canon_n which_o forbid_v judge_v the_o first_o seat_n be_v so_o vid._n conc._n nicen._n can._n 6._o above_o a_o hundred_o year_n after_o a._n d._n 456._o a_o irish_a council_n under_o st._n patrick_n determine_v that_o no_o presbyter_n who_o have_v build_v a_o church_n do_v offer_v the_o eucharistic_a sacrifice_n until_o he_o bring_v the_o bishop_n to_o consecrate_v it_o c._n 23._o about_o the_o year_n 494._o the_o power_n of_o consecrate_v church_n which_o the_o bishop_n have_v before_o appropriate_v to_o themselves_o be_v restrain_v to_o metropolitan_n by_o pope_n gelasius_n 25._o gelasius_n ep._n ix_o c._n 4._o &_o 25._o in_o the_o year_n 619._o the_o second_o council_n of_o sevil_n acknowledge_v that_o the_o consecration_n of_o church_n be_v forbid_v presbyter_n novellis_fw-la &_o ecclesiasticis_fw-la regulis_fw-la by_o certain_a new_a ecclesiastical_a canon_n 7._o canon_n con._n he_o 2_o can._n 7._o the_o consecration_n of_o altar_n be_v almost_o as_o ancient_a as_o the_o consecration_n of_o church_n it_o be_v mention_v about_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 506._o in_o the_o council_n of_o agatha_n can._n 10._o &_o 29._o and_o about_o the_o year_n 563._o in_o the_o council_n of_o braga_n 37._o braga_n conc._n bracar_n can._n 37._o for_o the_o same_o reason_n that_o we_o have_v lay_v aside_o the_o consecration_n of_o altar_n we_o may_v also_o that_o of_o church_n we_o conceive_v that_o all_o place_n be_v equal_o near_a to_o heaven_n and_o that_o all_o place_n where_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n be_v celebrate_v be_v equal_o holy_a god_n look_v more_o on_o the_o disposition_n of_o the_o worshipper_n than_o he_o do_v on_o the_o place_n of_o worship_n 16._o worship_n aug._n de_fw-fr unit_fw-la cap._n 16._o as_o austin_n well_o speak_v 1._o mr._n g._n will_v do_v well_o to_o show_v we_o 1._o some_o warrant_n from_o the_o new_a testament_n for_o consecration_n and_o holiness_n of_o place_n which_o he_o seem_v so_o fond_a of_o 2._o when_o he_o have_v do_v that_o let_v he_o show_v we_o what_o authority_n from_o the_o new_a testament_n the_o bishop_n have_v to_o appropriate_v the_o consecration_n of_o church_n to_o their_o order_n do_v timothy_n or_o titus_n who_o he_o call_v bishop_n consecrate_v church_n 3._o if_o the_o gospel_n give_v they_o no_o such_o power_n can_v he_o show_v any_o canon_n make_v since_o the_o reformation_n that_o do_v empower_v they_o to_o consecrate_v place_n of_o worship_n we_o have_v form_n for_o the_o order_v of_o priest_n and_o deacon_n and_o for_o the_o consecrate_v of_o bishop_n and_o arch-bishop_n we_o have_v a_o form_n for_o confirmation_n also_o but_o no_o form_n nor_o order_n nor_o direction_n about_o the_o consecration_n of_o church_n that_o ever_o i_o can_v meet_v with_o indeed_o the_o roman_a pontifical_a can_v supply_v we_o with_o one_o dr._n heylin_n tell_v we_o that_o archbishop_n laud_n have_v a_o design_n to_o draw_v up_o a_o english_a pontifical_a to_o be_v approve_v by_o the_o convocation_n in_o the_o year_n 1640._o this_o new_a pontifical_a be_v to_o contain_v among_o other_o thing_n a_o form_n to_o be_v observe_v by_o all_o arch-bishop_n and_o bishop_n for_o consecrate_v church_n church-yard_n and_o chapel_n 441._o chapel_n laud'_v life_n p._n 441._o but_o the_o trouble_n of_o the_o time_n oblige_v he_o to_o defer_v the_o prosecution_n of_o it_o till_o a_o fit_a conjuncture_n when_o king_n charles_n ii_o return_v and_o the_o bishop_n have_v all_o the_o advantage_n they_o can_v desire_v they_o do_v not_o prosecute_v the_o design_n not_o be_v so_o violent_a in_o that_o point_n as_o laud_n and_o his_o party_n have_v be_v 4._o wherein_o do_v a_o consecration_n promote_v the_o acceptance_n of_o our_o devotion_n with_o god_n be_v the_o worship_n of_o god_n more_o acceptable_a in_o a_o consecrate_a than_o in_o a_o vnconsecrated_a place_n if_o it_o be_v not_o what_o be_v we_o the_o better_a for_o consecration_n if_o it_o be_v let_v the_o rector_n prove_v it_o can_v he_o show_v any_o promise_n that_o be_v make_v to_o consecrate_a place_n as_o such_o under_o the_o gospel_n he_o can_v produce_v either_o a_o command_n of_o precedent_n for_o consecration_n of_o place_n under_o the_o gospel_n nor_o a_o promise_n to_o such_o place_n above_o other_o jesus_n christ_n promise_v to_o meet_v his_o people_n in_o all_o place_n without_o distinction_n mat._n 18.20_o john_n 4.21_o 23._o 1_o tim._n 2.8_o he_o dwell_v not_o in_o material_a temple_n act_v 7.49_o and_o 17.24_o the_o rector_n have_v study_v this_o subject_a and_o
way_n of_o manage_v controversy_n calvin_n vindicated_n bishop_n lordly_a title_n consider_v the_o parallel_n between_o the_o canon_n in_o act_n 15._o and_o the_o english_a canon_n parish-minister_n have_v no_o power_n of_o discipline_n the_o waldenses_n have_v no_o superior_a bishop_n prove_v 1._o from_o their_o doctrine_n that_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n be_v the_o same_o 2._o from_o their_o own_o testimony_n 3._o the_o testimony_n of_o f._n paul_n 4._o by_o several_a instance_n of_o ordination_n by_o their_o presbyter_n in_o england_n before_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o uninterrupted_a succession_n of_o bishop_n p._n 1_o to_o 45._o chap._n ii_o whether_o the_o jewish_a church_n be_v the_o first_o establish_v church_n the_o levitical_a priesthood_n no_o pattern_n for_o gospel-minister_n clemens_n rom._n vindicated_n whether_o jesus_n christ_n model_v his_o church_n after_o the_o jewish_a pattern_n or_o leave_v his_o church_n in_o a_o state_n of_o oligarchy_n as_o our_o author_n say_v his_o first_o instance_n of_o ordination_n from_o act_n 1._o consider_v 2._o the_o ordination_n of_o the_o seven_o deacon_n they_o be_v minister_n of_o table_n not_o of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n prove_v from_o scripture_n and_o antiquity_n objection_n answer_v 3._o his_o three_o instance_n of_o ordination_n from_o act_n 9.17_o consider_v 4._o his_o four_o from_o act_n 13.1_o 2_o 3._o this_o instance_n of_o ordination_n by_o presbyter_n vindicated_n the_o difference_n between_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n as_o state_v by_o he_o consider_v 5._o his_o five_o instance_n from_o act_n 14.13_o examine_v 6._o act_n 19.6_o 7._o consider_v 7.1_o cor._n 5.3_o 4_o 5._o vindicated_n 8.1_o tim._n 4.14_o for_o ordination_n by_o presbyter_n vindicated_n dr._n owen_n defend_v the_o rector_n unsound_a in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n 9.1_o pet._n 5.2_o vindicated_n p._n 45._o to_o 99_o chap._n iii_o the_o apostle_n leave_v the_o government_n of_o ephesus_n in_o the_o presbyter_n this_o establishment_n prove_v to_o be_v his_o last_o divine_a perpetual_a act_n 20._o explain_v this_o government_n never_o alter_v presbyter_n a_o divine_a remedy_n against_o schism_n superior_a bishop_n not_o the_o remedy_n timothy_n no_o diocesan_n bishop_n a_o unfixed_a evangelist_n of_o the_o asian_a angel_n not_o so_o call_v from_o the_o provincial_a guardian_n angel_n ignatius_n his_o bishop_n not_o diocesan_n titus_n no_o diocesan_n bishop_n presbyter_n be_v ruler_n p._n 99_o to_o p._n 121._o chap._n iu._n the_o first_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n be_v write_v before_o paul_n imprisonment_n at_o rome_n acknowledge_v by_o the_o ancient_n and_o by_o the_o learned_a asserter_n of_o episcopacy_n bp._n hall_n dr._n hammond_n &c_n &c_n deny_v by_o the_o rhemist_n bp._n pearson_n etc._n etc._n paul_n journey_n to_o macedonia_n 1_o tim._n 1.3_o consider_v jerom_n vindicated_n reason_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n be_v write_v before_o paul_n first_o bond_n the_o second_o epistle_n write_v in_o his_o first_o bond_n a_o objection_n answer_v act_n 20.25_o consider_v p._n 121._o to_o p._n 141._o chap._n v._n of_o evangelist_n whether_o they_o be_v fix_v neg._n act_v 21.8_o consider_v timothy_n and_o titus_n unfixed_a hilarius_n his_o account_n of_o evangelist_n eusebius_n testimony_n vindicated_n mark_v no_o fix_a evangelist_n chrysostom_n account_n of_o evangelist_n agree_v with_o eusebius_n p._n 141._o to_o p._n 151._o chap._n vi_o of_o parish-discipline_n presbyter_n have_v power_n of_o government_n 1._o j._n oh_o first_o argument_n for_o ordination_n by_o presbyter_n viz._n the_o identity_n of_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n acknowledge_v 1_o tim._n 5.17_o consider_v 1_o tim._n 1.3_o do_v not_o prove_v timothy_n bp._n of_o ephesus_n dr._n whittaker_n vindicated_n ignatius_n one_o altar_n explain_v the_o extent_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n a_o objection_n answer_v rev._n 5.11_o vindicated_n dr._n lightfoot'_v notion_n of_o angel_n vindicated_n 2._o j._n oh_o second_v argument_n for_o ordination_n by_o presbyter_n and_o three_o argument_n vindicated_n presbyter_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n ignatius_n and_o ireneus_fw-la vindicated_n more_o testimony_n to_o the_o same_o effect_n p._n 151._o to_o p._n 190._o errata_fw-la page_n 11._o marg._n after_o 80._o read_v 1._o p._n 12._o m._n for_o 1235._o r._n 1245._o p._n 14._o m._n for_o 5.30_o r._n 530._o p._n 26._o m._n f._n p._n 14._o r._n p._n 13_o 14._o p._n 35._o l._n 25._o r._n pope_n casualty_n p._n 46_o l._n 20._o f._n 24._o r._n 26._o p._n 53._o l._n 22._o f._n 72._o r._n 73._o p._n 63._o m._n f._n clerios_fw-la r._n clericis_fw-la p._n 67._o l._n 13._o deal_n a._n l._n 15_o r._n resolve_v p._n 87._o l._n 6._o r._n sanhedrin_n p._n 89._o l._n 11._o f._n of_o r._n at_o p._n 100_o l._n 10._o f._n 18._o r._n 28._o p._n 104._o l._n 3._o r._n story_n p._n 106._o l._n 31._o r._n presbyter_n p._n 109._o l._n 38._o r._n mal._n 2.1.7_o p._n 111._o l._n 38._o r._n diocese_n p._n 120._o l._n 7._o r._n 2_o cor._n 2.12_o 13._o p._n 122._o l._n 15._o r._n goncession_n p._n 140._o l._n 13._o r._n you_o p._n 143._o l._n 13._o r._n cretensis_n p._n 148._o l._n 3.15_o r._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d &_o l._n 30._o p._n 149._o l._n 15._o r._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d p._n 151._o l._n 22._o r._n crambe_n p._n 153._o l._n 8._o r._n there_o p._n 157._o l._n 12._o r._n apostle_n p._n 160._o l._n 2._o f._n 22._o r._n 2.2_o l._n ult_n r._n a_o p._n 172._o l._n 36._o f._n dot_z r._n not_o p._n 175._o l._n 8._o r._n conduct_v a_o defence_n of_o scripture-ordination_a etc._n etc._n chap._n i._n the_o dissenter_n justify_v in_o their_o way_n of_o manage_n controversy_n calvin_n vindicated_n bishop_n lordly_a title_n consider_v the_o parallel_n between_o the_o canon_n in_o act_n 15._o and_o the_o english_a canon_n parish-minister_n have_v no_o power_n of_o discipline_n the_o waldenses_n have_v no_o superior_a bishop_n prove_v 1._o from_o their_o doctrine_n 2._o from_o their_o own_o testimony_n 3._o from_o f._n paul_n testimony_n 4._o by_o several_a instance_n of_o ordination_n by_o their_o presbyter_n in_o england_n before_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o uninterrupted_a succession_n of_o bishop_n before_o he_o enter_v upon_o his_o subject_n he_o desire_v his_o common_a reader_n to_o observe_v the_o unfair_a way_n the_o dissenter_n have_v in_o manage_v controversy_n 2._o pref._n p._n 2._o 1._o do_v they_o pick_v up_o imperfect_a note_n of_o sermon_n preach_v a_o year_n or_o two_o before_o and_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o confute_v they_o when_o the_o author_n be_v dead_a and_o can_v vindicate_v themselves_o this_o be_v a_o little_a unfair_a but_o he_o know_v who_o do_v so_o when_o he_o preach_v his_o sermon_n of_o consecration_n in_o answer_n to_o a_o sermon_n of_o mr._n baldwin_n under_o the_o fictitious_a name_n of_o calvin_n as_o i_o be_o tell_v because_o forsooth_o calvus_n be_v bald_a and_o vincentio_n be_v wine_n and_o so_o you_o have_v the_o english_a of_o calvin_n que_fw-fr baldwine_n doubtless_o so_o learned_a a_o etymologist_n can_v give_v a_o reason_n why_o the_o odd_a epithet_n of_o bald_n be_v attribute_v to_o wine_n i_o be_o apt_a to_o think_v calvin_n himself_o as_o learned_a as_o he_o be_v never_o think_v of_o this_o rare_a etymon_n of_o his_o name_n but_o to_o return_v to_o our_o subject_n 2._o do_v the_o dissenter_n use_v to_o lodge_v their_o manuscript_n in_o some_o friend_n hand_n with_o a_o charge_n that_o none_o shall_v see_v they_o except_o they_o undertake_v to_o answer_v they_o and_o promise_v to_o return_v they_o the_o same_o day_n this_o be_v a_o unfair_a way_n of_o manage_v controversy_n and_o it_o be_v much_o more_o unfair_a for_o a_o man_n to_o triumph_v that_o a_o manuscript_n clog_v with_o inch_n unreasonable_a condition_n be_v not_o answer_v the_o rector_n can_v name_v the_o unfair_a man_n that_o have_v thus_o manage_v the_o controversy_n of_o the_o consecration-sermon_n mention_v before_o 3._o or_o do_v the_o dissenter_n pretend_v to_o answer_v book_n and_o leave_v the_o great_a part_n of_o they_o unanswered_a he_o know_v who_o do_v so_o also_o and_o insinuate_v in_o his_o title_n page_n as_o if_o he_o have_v answer_v the_o whole_a when_o indeed_o deed_n it_o be_v far_o otherwise_o this_o be_v a_o unfair_a way_n of_o manage_v controversy_n which_o somebody_o be_v guilty_a of_o but_o let_v we_o hear_v how_o he_o prove_v his_o charge_n i._o in_o most_o of_o their_o book_n be_v the_o argument_n what_o it_o will_v pref._n pref._n they_o represent_v we_o as_o arminian_o say_v he_o person_n that_o have_v a_o sore_a place_n complain_v they_o be_v hurt_v if_o one_o do_v but_o touch_v they_o this_o charge_n of_o arminianism_n be_v either_o true_a or_o false_a if_o true_a confess_v it_o and_o give_v glory_n to_o god_n if_o false_a disprove_v it_o i_o doubt_v the_o rector_n can_v acquit_v himself_o whatever_o other_o do_v for_o
lordship_n and_o dominion_n over_o your_o flock_n and_o brethren_n in_o the_o ministry_n the_o papist_n and_o some_o other_o object_n that_o tyrannical_a 10._o bellarm._n de_fw-fr rom._n pon._n v._o 10._o and_o not_o lawful_a dominion_n be_v here_o forbid_a and_o therefore_o say_v they_o matthew_n use_v the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o signify_v arbitrary_a and_o tyrannical_a dominion_n but_o it_o will_v appear_v that_o our_o saviour_n forbid_v all_o dominion_n as_o well_o as_o tyranny_n if_o we_o consider_v 1._o that_o st._n luke_n use_v the_o simple_a verb_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d luke_n 22.25_o which_o signify_v lawful_a and_o not_o tyrannical_a dominion_n and_o st._n matthew_n ought_v to_o be_v interpret_v by_o luke_n because_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o spiritual_a dominion_n use_v the_o simple_a verb_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 2_o cor._n 1.24_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d not_o that_o we_o have_v dominion_n over_o your_o faith_n the_o apostle_n do_v not_o exercise_v any_o dominion_n over_o the_o conscience_n of_o man_n they_o reckon_v themselves_o minister_n not_o lord_n they_o have_v the_o power_n of_o the_o word_n and_o not_o of_o the_o sword_n their_o weapon_n be_v not_o carnal_a but_o spiritual_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v lawful_a dominion_n adam_n dominion_n over_o the_o creature_n in_o a_o state_n of_o innocency_n which_o be_v far_o from_o tyranny_n be_v express_v by_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o lxx_o gen._n 1.28_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d christ_n dominion_n which_o be_v most_o holy_a and_o righteous_a and_o infinite_o remote_a from_o tyranny_n be_v set_v forth_o by_o the_o same_o word_n psal_n 110.2_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d rule_v thou_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o thy_o enemy_n 2._o christ_n forbid_v that_o dominion_n which_o the_o apostle_n covet_v and_o be_v ambitious_a of_o what_o be_v that_o not_o a_o tyrannical_a power_n over_o their_o brethren_n far_o be_v it_o from_o we_o to_o impute_v such_o horrid_a wickedness_n to_o such_o good_a man_n they_o be_v not_o so_o wicked_a as_o to_o desire_v a_o absolute_a power_n to_o tyrannize_v over_o the_o conscience_n and_o body_n of_o their_o fellow-subject_n the_o strife_n among_o they_o be_v which_o of_o they_o shall_v be_v account_v the_o great_a luke_n 22.24_o they_o expect_v to_o be_v so_o many_o prince_n dignify_v with_o power_n and_o title_n of_o honour_n above_o other_o they_o dream_v of_o a_o temporal_a kingdom_n the_o messiah_n be_v to_o set_v up_o as_o most_o of_o the_o jewish_a nation_n do_v and_o be_v ambitious_a of_o the_o chief_a dignity_n in_o this_o kingdom_n mat._n 20.21_o they_o think_v jesus_n christ_n will_v set_v up_o for_o a_o temporal_a prince_n and_o they_o aspire_v to_o a_o temporal_a dominion_n he_o tell_v they_o that_o dominion_n belong_v to_o temporal_a prince_n but_o it_o must_v not_o be_v so_o among_o his_o minister_n it_o ill_o become_v servant_n to_o assume_v the_o form_n of_o prince_n when_o their_o great_a prince_n assume_v the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n mat._n 20.27_o 28._o whosoever_o will_v be_v chief_a let_v he_o be_v your_o servant_n even_o at_o the_o son_n of_o man_n come_v not_o to_o be_v minister_v unto_o but_o to_o minister_v 3._o it_o be_v not_o a_o tyrannical_a dominion_n they_o covet_v for_o the_o dominion_n they_o desire_v be_v in_o subordination_n to_o jesus_n christ_n as_o their_o prince_n and_o king_n under_o who_o they_o desire_v to_o be_v chief_a minister_n of_o state_n next_o unto_o jesus_n christ_n in_o power_n and_o dominion_n one_o will_v sit_v on_o his_o right_a hand_n another_z at_z hi_o left_a in_o his_o kingdom_n mat._n 20.21_o now_o the_o power_n which_o they_o desire_v be_v in_o subordination_n to_o jesus_n christ_n as_o lord_n and_o king_n can_v be_v a_o tyrannical_a power_n for_o this_o be_v to_o impute_v tyranny_n to_o christ_n himself_o which_o be_v blasphemy_n it_o can_v therefore_o be_v imagine_v that_o christ_n shall_v forbid_v tyrannical_a dominion_n here_o which_o they_o have_v no_o thought_n of_o therefore_o all_o dominion_n like_o that_o of_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o earth_n which_o consist_v in_o a_o coercive_a power_n worldly_a grandeur_n and_o swell_a title_n of_o honour_n be_v here_o forbid_a 3._o the_o dissenter_n be_v not_o the_o only_a person_n who_o have_v oppose_v the_o secular_a dominion_n and_o lordly_a title_n of_o bishop_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n they_o be_v forbid_v to_o intermeddle_v with_o secular_a affair_n which_o be_v the_o province_n of_o civil_a magistrate_n upon_o pain_n of_o deprivation_n the_o ancient_a canon_n call_v the_o apostle_n which_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o six_o general_n council_n at_o constantinople_n feruntur_fw-la can._n 2._o can._n apost_n 6._o al._n 7._o &_o 80._o saecularia_fw-la officia_fw-la negotiaque_fw-la abjiciant_fw-la honorum_fw-la gradus_fw-la per_fw-la ambitionem_fw-la non_fw-la subeant_fw-la conc._n mogunt_n can._n 10._o sentel_n in_o clero_fw-la deputati_fw-la nec_fw-la ad_fw-la militiam_fw-la neque_fw-la ad_fw-la aliquam_fw-la veniant_fw-la dignitatem_fw-la mundanam_fw-la quasi_fw-la bruta_fw-la animalia_fw-la libertate_fw-la a●_n desiderio_fw-la svo_fw-la feruntur_fw-la do_v depose_v all_o bishop_n that_o engage_v themselves_o in_o public_a administration_n and_o worldly_a care_n they_o be_v forbid_v to_o receive_v secular_a honour_n by_o the_o great_a council_n of_o chalcedon_n can._n 7._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o council_n of_o mentz_n which_o be_v call_v by_o charles_n the_o great_a a._n d._n 813._o the_o clergy_n be_v enjoin_v to_o abstain_v from_o secular_a office_n and_o affair_n and_o from_o a_o ambitious_a assume_v of_o degree_n of_o honour_n i_o find_v another_o german_a council_n about_o the_o year_n 895._o make_v the_o clergy_n incapable_a of_o secular_a dignity_n conc._n tribur_n can._n 27._o the_o canon_n refer_v to_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o general_n council_n at_o chalcedon_n can._n 7._o and_o pronounce_v a_o anathema_n against_o those_o that_o violate_v this_o determination_n as_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n have_v do_v before_o the_o canon_n add_v that_o isidore_n compare_v those_o clergyman_n who_o be_v for_o secular_a affair_n and_o dignity_n to_o hippocentaur_n who_o be_v neither_o horse_n nor_o man_n but_o be_v act_v by_o a_o brutal_a appetite_n jerom_n desire_v the_o bishop_n to_o remember_v nepot_n meminerint_fw-la episcopi_fw-la se_fw-la sacerdotes_fw-la esse_fw-la non_fw-la dominos_fw-la hie._n ad_fw-la nepot_n that_o they_o be_v priest_n not_o lord_n austin_n say_v episcopacy_n be_v a_o name_n of_o work_n and_o not_o of_o honour_n 19_o honour_n de_fw-fr civ_o dei_fw-la xix_o 19_o valentinian_n make_v a_o law_n recall_v the_o judicial_a power_n of_o bishop_n in_o all_o cause_n except_o those_o of_o faith_n and_o religion_n unless_o voluntary_o choose_v by_o the_o contend_a party_n yet_o they_o grasp_v all_o power_n into_o their_o hand_n 14._o conc._n constant_a viii_o can._n 14._o until_o at_o last_o they_o be_v able_a to_o cope_v with_o king_n and_o prince_n and_o emperor_n must_v acknowledge_v they_o for_o their_o equal_n this_o make_v they_o a_o common_a grievance_n to_o the_o prince_n of_o europe_n insomuch_o that_o frederick_n the_o second_o emperor_n about_o the_o year_n 1245._o attempt_v to_o reduce_v they_o to_o the_o primitive_a simplicity_n as_o appear_v by_o a_o letter_n which_o he_o write_v to_o the_o king_n of_o england_n and_o to_o the_o king_n of_o france_n and_o to_o many_o other_o prince_n 203._o nobilitatem_fw-la &_o dignitatem_fw-la vniversalis_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la annullare_fw-la m._n west_n ad_fw-la a._n d._n 1235._o p._n 203._o in_o the_o close_a of_o which_o he_o signify_v his_o intention_n to_o divest_v the_o universal_a church_n of_o its_o nobility_n and_o dignity_n and_o to_o reduce_v the_o church_n to_o its_o primitive_a poverty_n and_o humility_n it_o can_v be_v imagine_v that_o he_o design_v to_o deprive_v bishop_n of_o a_o necessary_a and_o just_a maintenance_n but_o of_o their_o excessive_a and_o superfluous_a wealth_n and_o of_o their_o lordly_a dignity_n but_o the_o time_n be_v not_o yet_o come_v the_o ecclesiastical_a be_v too_o hard_o for_o the_o temporal_a power_n the_o emperor_n be_v at_o last_o depose_v by_o pope_n innocent_n ivth_o and_o his_o council_n of_o bishop_n at_o lion_n and_o at_o last_o destroy_v by_o manfred_n his_o natural_a or_o rather_o unnatural_a son_n in_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 1247._o many_o of_o the_o nobility_n of_o france_n enter_v into_o a_o confederacy_n confirm_v by_o a_o solemn_a oath_n to_o reduce_v the_o clergy_n to_o the_o primitive_a simplicity_n they_o publish_v a_o instrument_n signify_v that_o the_o clergy_n have_v swallow_v up_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o secular_a prince_n and_o that_o the_o son_n of_o slave_n or_o servant_n do_v judge_v freeman_n according_a to_o their_o own_o law_n who_o ought_v to_o have_v be_v
judge_v by_o the_o noble_n they_o put_v we_o in_o a_o worse_a condition_n say_v the_o confederate_a noble_n than_o god_n will_v have_v the_o pagan_n to_o be_v in_o when_o he_o say_v render_v to_o caesar_n the_o thing_n that_o be_v caesar_n and_o to_o god_n the_o thing_n that_o be_v go_n we_o decree_v and_o enact_v that_o from_o henceforth_o no_o clerk_n or_o layman_n bring_v any_o cause_n before_o the_o ordinary_a or_o his_o delegate_n except_o it_o be_v that_o of_o heresy_n matrimony_n or_o usury_n that_o so_o our_o jurisdiction_n be_v revive_v and_o that_o they_o who_o be_v enrich_v by_o our_o impoverishment_n may_v be_v reduce_v to_o the_o state_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n they_o conclude_v in_o the_o word_n of_o the_o emperor_n letter_n it_o be_v always_o our_o intention_n to_o oblige_v the_o clergy_n of_o every_o order_n especial_o the_o great_a to_o continue_v the_o same_o in_o the_o faith_n that_o they_o be_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n lead_v a_o apostolical_a life_n 218._o m._n west_n ad_fw-la an._n 1247._o p._n 217_o 218._o and_o imitate_v the_o humility_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n the_o civil_a dominion_n of_o the_o clergy_n be_v one_o of_o the_o main_a grievance_n of_o the_o bohemian_o which_o they_o will_v have_v redress_v in_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n 1438._o fox_n act_n and_o mon._n ad_fw-la an._n 1438._o their_o delegate_n dispute_v fifty_o day_n upon_o this_o and_o three_o other_o article_n in_o the_o council_n the_o lordly_a title_n and_o dominion_n of_o the_o clergy_n be_v very_o offensive_a to_o several_a confessor_n and_o martyr_n in_o this_o kingdom_n before_o the_o reformation_n that_o eminent_a light_n of_o his_o age_n jo._n wickliff_n affirm_v dominari_fw-la non_fw-la stat_fw-la purè_fw-la clericum_fw-la absque_fw-la mortali_fw-la peccato_fw-la civiliter_fw-la dominari_fw-la that_o it_o be_v a_o mortal_a sin_n for_o a_o clergyman_n to_o exercise_v civil_a dominion_n my_o lord_n cobham_n call_v the_o possession_n and_o lordship_n of_o bishop_n the_o venom_n of_o the_o church_n swinderby_n 208._o wall_n hist_o p._n 208._o a_o learned_a confessor_n and_o martyr_n as_o mr._n fox_n think_v have_v these_o word_n if_o man_n speaken_v of_o worldly_a power_n and_o lordship_n 1413._o fox_n ad_fw-la ann._n do._n 1413._o and_o worship_n with_o other_o vice_n that_o reignen_n therein_o what_o priest_n that_o desire_n and_o have_v most_o hereof_o in_o what_o degree_n soever_o he_o be_v he_o be_v most_o antichrist_n of_o all_o the_o priest_n that_o be_v on_o earth_n john_n purvey_v 1390._o fox_n ad_fw-la a._n d._n 1390._o a_o learned_a writer_n against_o popery_n who_o thomas_n walden_n call_v the_o library_n of_o lollard_n and_o gloser_n upon_o wickliff_n say_v it_o be_v a_o great_a abomination_n that_o bishop_n monk_n and_o other_o prelate_n 1576._o ibid._n p._n 5.30_o edit_n 1576._o be_v so_o great_a lord_n in_o this_o world_n whereas_o christ_n with_o his_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n never_o take_v upon_o then_o secular_a dominion_n he_o add_v that_o all_o christian_n ought_v to_o the_o utmost_a of_o their_o power_n and_o strength_n to_o swear_v that_o they_o will_v reduce_v such_o shaveling_n to_o the_o humility_n and_o poverty_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n william_n tindal_n that_o famous_a instrument_n of_o reformation_n who_o be_v burn_v in_o flanders_n by_o the_o instigation_n of_o the_o english_a monk_n because_o he_o have_v translate_v the_o scripture_n to_o the_o english_a tongue_n write_v that_o it_o be_v a_o shame_n of_o all_o shame_n and_o a_o monstrous_a thing_n that_o bishop_n shall_v deal_v in_o civil_a cause_n see_v his_o work_n p._n 124._o and_o in_o p._n 140._o what_o name_n have_v they_o my_o lord_n bishop_n my_o lord_n archbishop_n if_o it_o please_v your_o lordship_n if_o it_o please_v your_o grace_n the_o brightness_n of_o this_o truth_n have_v shine_v upon_o some_o doctor_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o the_o dark_a time_n ocham_n write_v against_o the_o temporal_a dominion_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o prelate_n 667._o gen._n 45._o ad_fw-la an._n dom._n 1338._o ad_fw-la nihilum_fw-la deducens_fw-la potestatem_fw-la papae_fw-la &_o praelatorum_fw-la in_o temporali_fw-la dominio_fw-la act_n and_o mon._n p._n 667._o as_o nauclerus_fw-la tell_v we_o one_o of_o the_o cardinal_n in_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n in_o a_o warm_a speech_n for_o amedeus_n duke_n of_o savoy_n candidate_n for_o the_o popedom_n have_v these_o word_n i_o have_v often_o consent_v unto_o their_o opinion_n which_o say_v it_o be_v expedient_a that_o the_o temporal_a dominion_n shall_v be_v divide_v from_o the_o ecclesiastical_a estate_n for_o i_o do_v think_v that_o the_o priest_n shall_v thereby_o be_v make_v more_o apt_a to_o the_o divine_a ministry_n the_o roman_a pagan_a priest_n meddle_v not_o in_o civil_a affair_n because_o if_o they_o have_v they_o must_v of_o necessity_n either_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d neglect_v the_o worship_n of_o the_o god_n or_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d prejudice_n the_o citizen_n by_o omit_v the_o duty_n owe_v to_o the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o which_o will_v often_o interfere_v ult_n plut._n quest_n rom._n ult_n the_o very_a light_n of_o nature_n teach_v the_o heathen_a that_o the_o service_n of_o the_o god_n and_o attendance_n upon_o secular_a employment_n be_v inconsistent_a for_o this_o reason_n the_o apostle_n forbid_v the_o minister_n of_o jesus_n christ_n especial_o bishop_n to_o entangle_v themselves_o with_o the_o affair_n of_o this_o life_n 2_o tim._n 2.3_o 4._o i_o will_v conclude_v this_o head_n with_o a_o passage_n or_o two_o out_o of_o moun_n jurieu_n pastoral_a letter_n to_o the_o persecute_a french_a protestant_n in_o his_o first_o pastoral_n letter_n 5._o past_a let._n 1._o p._n 4_o 5._o he_o thus_o animadvert_v upon_o the_o pastoral_n letter_n of_o my_o lord_n the_o bishop_n of_o meaux_n these_o gentleman_n be_v well_o advance_v since_o the_o author_n and_o founder_n of_o christianity_n who_o call_v themselves_o plain_o by_o their_o own_o name_n without_o any_o other_o title_n than_o that_o of_o servant_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o apostle_n of_o our_o lord_n my_o lord_n st._n peter_n and_o st._n paul_n have_v forget_v to_o set_v the_o character_n of_o their_o grandeur_n on_o the_o front_n of_o their_o pastoral_a letter_n or_o epistle_n it_o be_v not_o very_a edify_v to_o see_v the_o mark_n of_o pride_n and_o worldly_a vanity_n on_o the_o front_n of_o a_o pastoral_n letter_n he_o add_v a_o little_a after_o do_v not_o suffer_v yourselves_o to_o be_v abuse_v by_o those_o that_o tell_v you_o that_o in_o some_o protestant_n state_n the_o bishop_n retain_v the_o same_o honour_n the_o bishop_n of_o england_n have_v this_o to_o say_v for_o themselves_o that_o they_o be_v peer_n of_o the_o realm_n to_o which_o state_n and_o condition_n the_o name_n and_o title_n of_o my_o lord_n do_v appertain_v and_o belong_v but_o beside_o i_o be_o persuade_v that_o the_o wise_a of_o these_o gentleman_n will_v willing_o sacrifice_v these_o title_n which_o do_v not_o suff_v cient_o bespeak_v the_o humility_n of_o a_o minister_n of_o jesus_n christ_n to_o a_o general_a reformation_n in_o the_o church_n when_o it_o shall_v be_v receive_v i_o hope_v by_o this_o time_n the_o reader_n be_v convince_v how_o impertinent_o mr._n g._n appeal_n to_o the_o quaker_n 4._o pref._n p._n 4._o who_o he_o call_v indifferent_a person_n and_o honest_a in_o this_o case_n because_o they_o have_v quarrel_v not_o at_o the_o title_n of_o lord_n only_o but_o at_o that_o of_o master_n also_o jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n the_o general_n council_n of_o chalcedon_n the_o father_n prince_n confessor_n and_o doctor_n here_o witness_v against_o the_o lordly_a title_n and_o dominion_n of_o bishop_n be_v no_o quaker_n j._n o._n will_v not_o contend_v for_o the_o title_n of_o master_n which_o mr._n g._n in_o conformity_n to_o his_o indifferent_a quaker_n do_v not_o think_v fit_a to_o give_v he_o in_o his_o whole_a book_n 3._o a_o three_o way_n say_v the_o rector_n be_v to_o accuse_v we_o of_o symbolise_v with_o papist_n 5._o p._n 5._o i_o can_v wish_v there_o be_v no_o occasion_n for_o this_o charge_n our_o disagreement_n with_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v in_o those_o thing_n wherein_o she_o agree_v with_o that_o of_o rome_n and_o in_o which_o both_o of_o they_o disagree_v with_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o reform_a church_n abroad_o he_o tell_v we_o out_o of_o euseb_n lib._n 1._o it_o shall_v have_v be_v lib._n 2._o c._n 16._o that_o mark_v constitute_v church_n in_o alexandria_n that_o so_o great_a a_o multitude_n both_o of_o man_n and_o woman_n there_o embrace_v the_o christian_a faith_n etc._n etc._n these_o church_n mark_v govern_v and_o after_o he_o bishop_n anianus_n as_o be_v show_v in_o these_o paper_n this_o quotation_n he_o the_o rather_o produce_v because_o it_o have_v be_v overlooked_a of_o late_a this_o
or_o no._n he_o be_v the_o sole_a sovereign_a power_n and_o not_o oblige_v to_o take_v the_o coronation_n oath_n or_o to_o govern_v according_a to_o the_o establish_v law_n if_o we_o may_v believe_v our_o rector_n i_o will_v not_o trouble_v myself_o or_o the_o reader_n by_o make_v remark_n upon_o these_o passage_n which_o be_v but_o a_o few_o of_o many_o with_o which_o his_o three_o sermon_n abound_v all_o these_o you_o may_v find_v in_o the_o first_o these_o sermon_n be_v design_v as_o he_o tell_v we_o 3._o pref._n 10_o the_o serm._n p._n 3._o and_o i_o dare_v believe_v he_o to_o assure_v the_o high_a power_n of_o his_o steadiness_n and_o fidelity_n and_o of_o may_v more_o in_o these_o northern_a climate_n it_o be_v a_o point_n of_o mighty_a consequence_n to_o the_o high_a power_n to_o be_v assure_v of_o the_o rector_n fidelity_n especial_o in_o a_o time_n when_o the_o prince_n be_v under_o some_o disadvantage_n most_o happy_a prince_n who_o can_v assure_v himself_o of_o the_o fidelity_n of_o such_o a_o man_n as_o mr._n g._n for_o in_o he_o he_o assure_v himself_o of_o many_o more_o in_o these_o northern_a climate_n the_o high_a power_n then_o in_o be_v be_v high_o oblige_v to_o so_o profound_a a_o casuist_n who_o by_o another_o tentamen_fw-la novum_n attempt_v to_o prove_v the_o jus_fw-la divinum_fw-la of_o absolute_a monarchy_n and_o arbitrary_a government_n but_o all_o well-deserving_a expectant_n have_v not_o the_o happiness_n of_o be_v prefer_v according_a to_o their_o merit_n but_o to_o return_v to_o his_o parallel_n 3._o the_o council_n at_o jerusalem_n under_o the_o conduct_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n enjoin_v the_o necessary_a forbearance_n of_o a_o few_o thing_n to_o avoid_v offence_n act_v 15.28_o the_o convocation_n have_v make_v canon_n enjoin_v the_o practice_n of_o abundance_n of_o unnecessary_a thing_n to_o create_v offence_n that_o council_n widen_v the_o door_n to_o church-fellowship_n by_o take_v away_o the_o ancient_a ceremonial_a term_n of_o communion_n and_o break_v down_o the_o partition_n wall_n between_o jew_n and_o gentile_n the_o convocation_n have_v straighten_a the_o door_n to_o church-fellowship_n by_o set_v up_o new_a ceremonial_a term_n of_o communion_n and_o erect_v a_o partition_n wall_n between_o brethren_n 4._o the_o council_n at_o jerusalem_n free_v the_o christian_n from_o a_o divine_a yoke_n namely_o circumcision_n the_o convocation_n bind_v a_o humane_a yoke_n of_o burdensome_a ceremony_n on_o our_o neck_n the_o apostle_n assert_v that_o christian_a liberty_n which_o the_o lord_n jesus_n purchase_v at_o a_o dear_a rate_n and_o oblige_v we_o to_o maintain_v gal._n 5.1_o other_o unjust_o deprive_v we_o of_o it_o and_o mancipate_v we_o under_o more_o beggarly_a element_n than_o those_o of_o the_o jewish_a pedagogy_n gal._n 4.9_o have_v the_o apostle_n successor_n imitate_v the_o excellent_a temper_n of_o their_o wise_a father_n in_o this_o council_n the_o christian_a world_n have_v not_o be_v divide_v into_o so_o many_o faction_n as_o it_o be_v at_o this_o day_n when_o rehoboam_n little_a finger_n prove_v heavy_a than_o solomon_n loin_n no_o wonder_n there_o be_v a_o schism_n in_o israel_n 5._o the_o council_n at_o jerusalem_n make_v no_o new_a canon_n only_o think_v fit_a to_o continue_v some_o divine_a prohibition_n that_o be_v oblige_v before_o act_v 15.29_o the_o convocation_n have_v make_v but_o 141_o new_a canon_n concern_v most_o of_o which_o there_o be_v no_o divine_a law_n the_o canon_n of_o that_o council_n be_v contain_v in_o one_o short_a verse_n v._o 29._o the_o canon_n of_o our_o synod_n make_v a_o large_a volume_n 6._o the_o canon_n of_o that_o council_n have_v no_o penalty_n annex_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n end_v thus_o v._o 29._o from_o which_o if_o you_o keep_v yourselves_o you_o shall_v do_v well_o fare_v you_o well_o our_o canon_n thunder_n out_o terrible_a anathema_n and_o excommunication_n ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la not_o know_v to_o the_o apostle_n against_o all_o the_o breaker_n of_o they_o 7._o the_o canon_n at_o jerusalem_n be_v make_v by_o the_o apostle_n elder_n and_o the_o whole_a church_n v._o 22._o our_o canon_n be_v make_v by_o the_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n in_o convocation_n which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o england_n by_o representation_n as_o can._n 139._o oblige_v we_o to_o believe_v on_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n mr._n g._n make_v the_o parliament_n to_o represent_v the_o multitude_n of_o believer_n that_o be_v the_o church_n according_a to_o his_o parallel_n for_o he_o make_v the_o bishop_n to_o answer_v the_o apostle_n the_o presbyter_n the_o elder_n and_o the_o parliament_n the_o whole_a church_n or_o multitude_n of_o believer_n i_o leave_v the_o rector_n to_o the_o censure_n of_o his_o diocesan_n who_o be_v oblige_v by_o the_o canon_n to_o excommunicate_v and_o not_o to_o restore_v he_o until_o he_o repent_v and_o public_o revoke_v this_o his_o wicked_a error_n 139_o error_n can._n 139_o in_o affirm_v the_o parliament_n to_o be_v the_o church_n representative_a instead_o of_o the_o convocation_n i_o hope_v the_o impartial_a reader_n be_v now_o full_o convince_v how_o exact_o the_o episcopal_a government_n as_o describe_v by_o this_o gentleman_n agree_v with_o the_o council_n at_o jerusalem_n he_o be_v angry_a with_o j._n o._n for_o say_v parish_n priest_n have_v no_o power_n of_o discipline_n 14_o pref._n p._n 14_o and_o answer_n they_o have_v power_n to_o rebuke_v and_o admonish_v and_o suspend_v for_o a_o while_n from_o the_o lord_n supper_n this_o be_v in_o effect_n a_o acknowledgement_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o what_o j._n o._n assert_n they_o have_v power_n to_o rebuke_v and_o admonish_v so_o have_v private_a person_n leu._n 19.17_o col._n 3.16_o the_o admonition_n of_o a_o master_n who_o have_v no_o power_n to_o use_v the_o rod_n will_v have_v little_a influence_n upon_o froward_a lad_n but_o parish_n minister_n can_v suspend_v for_o a_o while_n for_o how_o long_o but_o for_o fourteen_o day_n at_o the_o far_a and_o then_o they_o be_v oblige_v to_o put_v the_o whole_a matter_n out_o of_o their_o power_n and_o to_o commit_v it_o to_o the_o ordinary_a see_v the_o rubric_n before_o the_o communion_n the_o true_a state_n of_o the_o case_n be_v this_o 1._o they_o have_v no_o power_n leave_v they_o to_o judge_v who_o to_o baptise_v and_o who_o not_o 68_o can._n 68_o but_o must_v baptise_v all_o that_o be_v offer_v though_o the_o child_n of_o jew_n infidel_n deist_n etc._n etc._n who_o have_v no_o right_n to_o the_o privilege_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n 2._o they_o have_v no_o power_n to_o forbear_v give_v the_o eucharist_n to_o any_o one_o how_o notorious_a a_o offender_n soever_o unless_o they_o will_v prosecute_v he_o at_o the_o bishop_n court_n nor_o then_o but_o for_o once_o so_o that_o if_o he_o pay_v his_o fee_n and_o be_v absolve_v there_o though_o the_o minister_n know_v he_o to_o be_v never_o so_o impenitent_a he_o must_v give_v it_o he_o the_o next_o time_n and_o the_o prosecution_n be_v so_o troublesome_a odious_a and_o fruitless_a that_o it_o be_v very_o rare_o undertake_v 3._o they_o have_v no_o power_n to_o call_v person_n to_o repentance_n open_o before_o the_o church_n 4._o they_o have_v no_o power_n to_o judge_v any_o person_n to_o be_v excommunicate_a nor_o to_o absolve_v any_o person_n that_o be_v penitent_a after_o excommunication_n they_o only_o read_v the_o chancellor_n sentence_n who_o be_v usual_o a_o layman_n send_v they_o in_o the_o bishop_n name_n much_o like_o our_o crier_n in_o civil_a court_n that_o publish_v the_o order_n of_o the_o court_n yea_o though_o they_o be_v satisfy_v in_o their_o conscience_n that_o the_o chancellor_n decree_n be_v sometime_o unjust_a et_fw-la cleave_v errante_fw-la excommunicate_v a_o conscientious_a person_n scruple_v a_o ceremony_n as_o be_v do_v in_o the_o late_a reign_n or_o absolve_v a_o impenitent_a person_n who_o have_v commute_v for_o notorious_a scandal_n yet_o they_o must_v publish_v it_o or_o be_v suspend_v all_o the_o power_n leave_v they_o be_v the_o privilege_n of_o be_v the_o chancellor_n servant_n to_o execute_v all_o his_o decree_n without_o once_o examine_v whether_o they_o be_v right_a or_o wrong_n many_o sober_a conformist_n who_o have_v a_o tender_a concern_v for_o the_o soul_n under_o their_o charge_n have_v complain_v of_o this_o restraint_n and_o impute_v the_o grow_a debauchery_n of_o the_o people_n to_o the_o want_n of_o parish_n discipline_n the_o very_a liturgy_n complain_v that_o the_o godly_a primitive_a discipline_n be_v want_v in_o our_o church_n see_v the_o office_n of_o commination_n if_o the_o parish-minister_n have_v the_o power_n of_o discipline_n as_o the_o rector_n will_v have_v we_o believe_v the_o more_o to_o blame_v they_o for_o admit_v all_o person_n promiscuous_o to_o the_o lord_n supper_n it_o be_v rare_o that_o any_o scandalous_a person_n be_v exclude_v as_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v
some_o minister_n create_v zamburgius_n and_o his_o two_o companion_n bishop_n confer_v on_o they_o the_o power_n to_o ordain_v minister_n this_o be_v sufficient_a say_v he_o to_o make_v a_o man_n doubt_v j._n oh_o quotation_n this_o quotation_n which_o mr._n g._n borrow_a of_o his_o learned_a neighbour_n and_o triumph_n in_o as_o a_o wonderful_a discovery_n of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o waldenses_n he_o may_v have_v find_v in_o j._n oh_o plea_n p._n 157._o quote_v out_o of_o the_o history_n of_o bohemia_n to_o which_o he_o refer_v his_o reader_n in_o the_o margin_n of_o his_o book_n the_o rector_n be_v a_o singular_a man_n for_o answer_v book_n who_o must_v be_v oblige_v to_o his_o learned_a neighbour_n for_o a_o quotation_n which_o any_o common_a reader_n can_v find_v in_o the_o book_n which_o he_o undertake_v to_o answer_v a_o man_n who_o read_v book_n with_o so_o little_a observation_n may_v be_v presume_v to_o answer_v they_o with_o lèss_a judgement_n the_o reader_n may_v see_v the_o remark_n upon_o that_o story_n in_o j._n oh_o plea_n which_o may_v convince_v he_o that_o the_o waldensian_a bishop_n be_v only_o the_o senior_a pastor_n with_o who_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n be_v entrust_v for_o order_n sake_n as_o be_v do_v here_o in_o the_o late_a time_n of_o presbytery_n and_o be_v still_o both_o here_o and_o in_o the_o foreign_a reform_a church_n in_o all_o ordination_n by_o presbyter_n there_o be_v a_o moderator_n or_o precedent_n who_o be_v the_o chief_a manager_n of_o the_o action_n for_o order_n sake_n but_o in_o conjunction_n with_o his_o brethren_n over_o who_o he_o claim_v no_o jurisdiction_n or_o superiority_n in_o power_n this_o be_v the_o state_n of_o the_o waldenses_n their_o bishop_n be_v only_o nominal_a and_o titular_a but_o have_v no_o power_n over_o their_o brethren_n they_o be_v only_o for_o order_n sake_n the_o principal_a manager_n of_o ordination_n this_o appear_v 1._o because_o it_o be_v their_o receive_a doctrine_n that_o all_o presbyter_n be_v in_o a_o state_n of_o parity_n to_o this_o purpose_n they_o speak_v in_o a_o certain_a confession_n of_o their_o faith_n 13._o perr_n hist_o i._o 13._o art_n v._o we_o hold_v that_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n ought_v not_o to_o have_v any_o superiority_n over_o the_o clergy_n aeneas_n silvias_n who_o write_v a_o book_n of_o their_o doctrine_n dogm_n inter_fw-la sacerdotes_fw-la nullum_fw-la discrimen_fw-la boh._n hist_o de_fw-fr vald._n dogm_n report_v this_o concern_v they_o that_o they_o affirm_v the_o roman_a bishop_n to_o be_v equal_a to_o other_o bishop_n and_o that_o between_o priest_n there_o be_v no_o difference_n the_o same_o be_v affirm_v concern_v they_o by_o nauclerus_fw-la he_o represent_v they_o say_v that_o all_o priest_n be_v equal_a 47._o chronog_n vol._n 2._o gen._n 47._o and_o it_o be_v not_o any_o superior_a dignity_n but_o the_o merit_n of_o their_o conversation_n that_o advance_v some_o above_o other_o this_o be_v the_o constant_a doctrine_n of_o our_o english_a apostle_n john_n wickliff_n 1389._o vide_fw-la hist_n arg._n ad_fw-la ann._n dom_fw-la 1389._o and_o his_o follower_n as_o walsingham_n note_n in_o several_a place_n this_o also_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o bohemian_o who_o be_v enlighten_v by_o wickliff_n book_n the_o taborite_n in_o their_o confession_n say_v that_o the_o confer_v of_o order_n only_o by_o bishop_n 23._o exit_fw-la consuetudine_fw-la habertur_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la lyd._n wald._n p._n 23._o and_o that_o they_o have_v great_a authority_n than_o other_o minister_n be_v not_o from_o any_o faith_n or_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o from_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n the_o bishop_n they_o receive_v from_o the_o waldenses_n be_v make_v by_o two_o of_o their_o titular_a bishop_n bohem._n hist_o of_o the_o persec_n of_o bohem._n and_o some_o presbyter_n which_o bespeak_v they_o to_o be_v no_o superior_a order_n of_o minister_n for_o presbyter_n can_v make_v bishop_n of_o the_o english_a species_n one_o of_o the_o article_n against_o john_n hus_n the_o bohemian_a martyr_n be_v that_o he_o affirm_v that_o all_o priest_n be_v of_o like_a power_n constant_n act_n and_o mon._n in_o conc._n constant_n and_o that_o the_o reservation_n of_o the_o casualty_n the_o order_n of_o bishop_n and_o the_o consecration_n of_o priest_n be_v invent_v only_o for_o covetousness_n 2._o that_o they_o have_v no_o real_a bishop_n superior_a to_o presbyter_n be_v evident_a from_o their_o own_o testimony_n the_o papist_n misrepresent_v they_o as_o some_o other_o will_v do_v now_o that_o they_o have_v bishop_n to_o who_o they_o pay_v a_o mighty_a deference_n this_o be_v most_o false_a 10._o hist_o wald._a l._n 10._o as_o perrin_n evince_v out_o of_o their_o own_o write_n the_o monk_n rainerius_n say_v he_o report_v many_o thing_n touch_v the_o vocation_n of_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o waldenses_n which_o never_o be_v as_o that_o which_o be_v impose_v upon_o they_o that_o they_o have_v one_o great_a bishop_n and_o two_o follower_n which_o he_o call_v the_o elder_a sou_n and_o the_o young_a and_o a_o deacon_n that_o he_o lay_v his_o hand_n on_o other_o with_o sovereign_a authority_n and_o send_v they_o whither_o he_o think_v good_a like_o a_o pope_n that_o they_o have_v no_o such_o bishop_n he_o prove_v out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o pastor_n george_n maurel_n and_o peter_n mascon_n who_o give_v this_o account_n of_o their_o discipline_n the_o last_o that_o be_v receive_v or_o ordain_v be_v to_o do_v nothing_o without_o the_o leave_n and_o licence_n of_o their_o seniors_n receive_v or_o ordain_v before_o they_o as_o also_o they_o that_o be_v first_o ought_v not_o to_o attempt_v any_o thing_n without_o the_o approbation_n of_o their_o companion_n to_o the_o end_n that_o all_o thing_n may_v be_v do_v among_o we_o in_o order_n the_o reader_n may_v note_v here_o 1._o that_o the_o waldensian_a bishop_n be_v only_o the_o seniour_n pastor_n 2._o that_o these_o have_v no_o power_n over_o other_o minister_n 3._o that_o they_o can_v not_o put_v forth_o any_o act_n of_o government_n without_o the_o approbation_n of_o their_o brethren_n so_o that_o the_o waldensian_a church_n be_v govern_v by_o the_o common_a council_n of_o the_o presbyter_n or_o pastor_n 4._o all_o this_o be_v for_o order_n sake_n i_o leave_v it_o to_o the_o impartial_a to_o judge_n whether_o this_o sort_n of_o government_n have_v any_o thing_n of_o the_o form_n of_o our_o episcopal_a government_n these_o testimony_n be_v sufficient_a to_o satisfy_v unprejudiced_a person_n that_o the_o waldenses_n have_v no_o bishop_n superior_a to_o presbyter_n but_o i_o will_v add_v a_o few_o more_fw-mi ex_fw-la abundanti_fw-la 3._o that_o they_o have_v no_o bishop_n in_o a_o proper_a sense_n appear_v by_o father_n paul_n description_n of_o they_o the_o people_n of_o the_o valley_n be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o waldenses_n who_o four_o hundred_o year_n since_o 1563._o since_o he_o end_v his_o history_n with_o the_o year_n 1563._o forsake_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o persecution_n flee_v into_o polonia_n germany_n puglia_n provence_n and_o some_o of_o they_o into_o the_o valley_n of_o mountsenis_n lucerna_fw-la angronia_fw-la perosa_fw-la and_o st._n martin_n these_o have_v always_o continue_v in_o their_o separation_n with_o certain_a minister_n of_o their_o own_o who_o they_o call_v pastor_n when_o the_o doctrine_n of_o zuinglius_fw-la be_v plant_v in_o geneva_n do_v present_o unite_v themselves_o with_o those_o as_o agree_v with_o they_o in_o point_n of_o doctrine_n and_o principal_a rite_n 1559_o hist._n of_o c._n of_o trent_n lib._n v._o ad_fw-la a._n d._n 1559_o thus_o he_o observe_v in_o this_o quotation_n 1._o he_o ascribe_v to_o the_o waldenses_n certain_a minister_n not_o bishop_n who_o they_o call_v pastor_n if_o there_o have_v be_v any_o superior_a bishop_n among_o they_o so_o exact_a a_o historian_n will_v not_o have_v omit_v they_o 2._o he_o say_v they_o agree_v in_o doctrinos_n and_o rite_n with_o those_o of_o geneva_n 3._o they_o present_o unite_v with_o they_o by_o reason_n of_o this_o agreement_n i_o hope_v the_o rector_n will_v not_o affirm_v that_o the_o protestant_n of_o geneva_n have_v bishop_n no_o more_o have_v the_o waldenses_n who_o agree_v with_o they_o in_o rite_n and_o doctrine_n and_o among_o other_o doctrine_n in_o this_o of_o the_o parity_n of_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n and_o so_o ready_o unite_v with_o they_o i_o doubt_v it_o will_v not_o be_v so_o easy_a to_o reconcile_v this_o gentleman_n to_o the_o doctrine_n and_o rite_n of_o geneva_n to_o be_v sure_a than_o his_o notion_n of_o episcopacy_n be_v very_o different_a from_o those_o of_o the_o anti-popish_a waldenses_n 4._o that_o they_o have_v no_o bishop_n may_v be_v further_o evidence_v by_o their_o ordination_n here_o in_o england_n which_o be_v by_o presbyter_n and_o not_o by_o bishop_n walsingham_n say_v 1389_o
he_o disingenuous_o abuse_v his_o reader_n for_o 1._o clemens_n no_o where_o say_v as_o he_o make_v he_o to_o speak_v that_o there_o be_v bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n as_o three_o distinct_a officer_n in_o the_o christian_a church_n 2._o he_o no_o where_o say_v that_o the_o bishop_n answer_v the_o high_a priest_n the_o presbyter_n the_o inferior_a priest_n and_o the_o deacon_n the_o levite_n there_o be_v not_o a_o word_n of_o this_o in_o all_o that_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n to_o which_o mr._n g._n refer_v we_o 3._o he_o mention_n but_o two_o order_n of_o new_a testament_n officer_n bishop_n and_o deacon_n the_o apostle_n say_v he_o preach_v the_o gospel_n in_o country_n and_o city_n ordain_v the_o first_o fruit_n of_o they_o that_o believe_v have_v try_v they_o by_o the_o spirit_n to_o he_o bishop_n and_o deacon_n for_o they_o that_o shall_v afterward_o believe_v cor._n believe_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d clem._n ad_fw-la cor._n the_o same_o officer_n be_v in_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n at_o this_o time_n which_o the_o apostle_n have_v settle_v in_o the_o church_n of_o philippi_n phil._n 1.1_o bishop_n and_o deacon_n there_o be_v several_a bishop_n in_o the_o single_a church_n of_o philippi_n and_o not_o one_o chief_a so_o in_o this_o church_n of_o corinth_n which_o be_v govern_v by_o several_a bishop_n who_o clemens_n call_v presbyter_n these_o govern_v the_o church_n in_o common_a he_o do_v not_o mention_v any_o chief_a bishop_n in_o corinth_n but_o he_o affirm_v that_o the_o presbyter_n there_o perform_v the_o duty_n of_o their_o episcopacy_n 〈◊〉_d episcopacy_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d he_o exhort_v the_o corinthian_n to_o be_v subject_a to_o their_o elder_n 〈◊〉_d elder_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i_o can_v wish_v this_o excellent_a epistle_n of_o clemens_n which_o i_o hear_v be_v late_o do_v into_o english_a be_v in_o every_o hand_n it_o will_v abundant_o satisfy_v the_o unprejudiced_a that_o the_o order_n of_o superior_a bishop_n have_v no_o be_v in_o the_o church_n in_o clemens_n his_o time_n he_o write_v to_o the_o corinthian_a church_n about_o schism_n and_o that_o occassioned_a by_o some_o of_o their_o presbyter_n but_o have_v not_o one_o word_n of_o obedience_n to_o a_o superior_a diocesan_n bishop_n as_o the_o remedy_n against_o schism_n the_o only_a passage_n that_o give_v the_o least_o umbrage_n to_o a_o diocesan_n episcopacy_n be_v that_o which_o mention_n high-priest_n priest_n and_o levite_n under_o the_o law_n and_o a_o little_a after_o bishop_n and_o deacon_n under_o the_o gospel_n not_o that_o he_o make_v the_o former_a pattern_n of_o the_o latter_a for_o than_o he_o will_v have_v say_v bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n as_o the_o rector_n false_o affirm_v he_o do_v but_o he_o express_o say_v the_o apostle_n institute_v bishop_n and_o deacon_n we_o must_v explain_v clemen_n bishop_n and_o deacon_n by_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o not_o by_o the_o old_a for_o he_o speak_v of_o a_o apostolical_a institution_n which_o we_o must_v look_v for_o in_o paul_n epistle_n and_o not_o in_o the_o levitical_a law_n now_o we_o find_v bishop_n and_o deacon_n in_o phil._n 1.1_o 1_o tim._n 3._o paul_n bishop_n and_o clemen_n bishop_n be_v the_o same_o paul_n bishop_n be_v presbyter_n for_o there_o be_v several_a of_o they_o in_o one_o church_n phil._n 1.1_o clemen_n bishop_n be_v but_o presbyter_n of_o which_o there_o be_v several_a in_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n the_o force_n of_o clemens_n his_o argument_n be_v this_o as_o the_o old_a testament_n church_n be_v guide_v by_o a_o divine_a institution_n in_o the_o levitical_a priesthood_n so_o must_v we_o in_o the_o gospel-ministry_n they_o rest_v in_o the_o order_n of_o the_o old_a law_n and_o we_o must_v in_o those_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n the_o order_n be_v different_a as_o he_o express_o declare_v but_o the_o authority_n enjoin_v they_o be_v the_o same_o that_o we_o must_v thus_o understand_v he_o appear_v further_a from_o these_o word_n of_o he_o 〈◊〉_d he_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d even_o our_o apostle_n understand_v by_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n that_o there_o will_v be_v strife_n about_o the_o name_n of_o episcopacy_n for_o this_o very_a reason_n therefore_o have_v perfect_a knowledge_n thereof_o before_o hand_n they_o ordain_v the_o aforesaid_a officer_n i._n e._n bishop_n and_o deacon_n clement_n observe_v here_o 1._o that_o the_o apostle_n do_v foresee_v there_o will_v be_v contention_n about_o the_o order_n and_o dignity_n of_o bishop_n in_o the_o church_n 2._o that_o they_o take_v care_n to_o accommodate_v the_o difference_n about_o episcopacy_n by_o settle_v officer_n in_o the_o church_n 3._o the_o officer_n they_o settle_v be_v bishop_n and_o deacon_n and_o of_o these_o bishop_n there_o be_v several_a in_o a_o church_n who_o govern_v it_o in_o common_a as_o we_o find_v in_o ephesus_n act_v 20.17_o 28._o and_o at_o philippi_n phil._n 1.1_o and_o here_o at_o corinth_n it_o be_v manifest_a say_v the_o rector_n that_o jesus_n christ_n whilst_o on_o earth_n model_v his_o little_a flock_n 2._o p._n 2._o according_a to_o this_o pattern_n himself_o be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o highpriest_n the_o twelve_o apostle_n his_o second_o and_o the_o seventy_o disciple_n still_o of_o a_o loner_n rank_n this_o be_v speak_v with_o great_a assurance_n it_o be_v manifest_a say_v he_o but_o you_o must_v take_v his_o bare_a word_n for_o proof_n 1._o be_v it_o manifest_a that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o high_a priest_n this_o be_v a_o dangerous_a assertion_n and_o savour_v of_o socinianism_n the_o socinian_o deny_v the_o reality_n of_o christ_n priesthood_n and_o satisfaction_n the_o rector_n make_v he_o but_o as_o it_o be_v high_a priest_n if_o he_o will_v be_v at_o the_o pain_n to_o read_v the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n he_o will_v find_v that_o jesus_n christ_n have_v a_o real_a priesthood_n and_o that_o he_o be_v and_o be_v the_o high_a priest_n of_o our_o profession_n i_o hope_v the_o rector_n be_v no_o socinian_n but_o when_o i_o compare_v this_o with_o some_o odd_a passage_n of_o his_o about_o justification_n of_o which_o hereafter_o it_o be_v no_o breach_n of_o charity_n to_o say_v he_o ought_v to_o clear_v himself_o from_o the_o appearance_n of_o that_o grow_a heresy_n they_o that_o be_v sound_a in_o the_o faith_n ought_v to_o study_v a_o form_n of_o sound_a word_n the_o scripture_n no_o where_o call_v jesus_n christ_n as_o it_o be_v a_o high_a priest_n he_o that_o can_v degrade_v jesus_n christ_n from_o the_o honour_n of_o a_o real_a priesthood_n to_o advance_v the_o honourable_a order_n of_o bishop_n be_v but_o as_o it_o be_v a_o friend_n that_o be_v no_o real_a one_o to_o either_o 2._o be_v it_o manifest_a that_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n be_v under_o christ_n as_o the_o priest_n under_o the_o chief_a priest_n that_o they_o be_v under_o he_o none_o question_v but_o not_o as_o priest_n for_o they_o be_v none_o as_o all_o protestant_n confess_v and_o i_o hope_v this_o gentleman_n will_v not_o make_v they_o priest_n in_o a_o popish_a sense_n to_o offer_v up_o the_o idolatrous_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n the_o number_n of_o twelve_o have_v no_o relation_n to_o the_o priesthood_n the_o priest_n be_v divide_v into_o twenty_o four_o order_n and_o not_o into_o twelve_o 1_o chron._n 24._o bishop_n andrews_n make_v the_o twelve_o apostle_n to_o answer_v the_o prince_n of_o the_o twelve_o tribe_n 25._o form_n of_o goverr_n p._n 25._o which_o our_o rector_n mistake_v perhaps_o for_o twelve_o priest_n but_o be_v it_o as_o it_o will_v 1.16_o num._n 1.16_o he_o be_v manifest_o mistake_v in_o his_o notion_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o well_o as_o of_o christ_n 3._o be_v it_o manifest_a that_o the_o seventy_o two_o disciple_n answer_v the_o levite_n bishop_n andrews_n and_o other_o assertor_n of_o episcopacy_n make_v they_o to_o answer_v the_o seventy_o two_o elder_n who_o no_o man_n but_o mr._n g._n will_v affirm_v to_o be_v a_o bench_n of_o inferior_a levite_n 11.16_o num._n 11.16_o the_o great_a council_n of_o seventy_o have_v the_o supreme_a judicature_n under_o moses_n who_o be_v not_o the_o high_a priest_n which_o he_o will_v scarce_o allow_v the_o presbyter_n much_o less_o the_o deacon_n who_o the_o seventy_o disciple_n represent_v according_a to_o his_o parallel_n have_v tell_v we_o how_o christ_n model_v his_o flock_n whilst_o he_o be_v on_o earth_n he_o proceed_v to_o acquaint_v we_o in_o what_o state_n he_o leave_v it_o at_o his_o death_n here_o he_o be_v at_o a_o loss_n what_o to_o say_v and_o yet_o must_v needs_o teach_v his_o reader_n what_o he_o do_v not_o understand_v himself_o he_o seem_v 2._o p._n 2._o say_v he_o to_o leave_v his_o church_n in_o a_o state_n of_o oligarchy_n or_o in_o the_o power_n of_o twelve_o when_o i_o read_v these_o word_n i_o turn_v
this_o scripture_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o deacon_n with_o the_o qualification_n of_o deacon_n in_o 1_o tim._n 3._o and_o it_o will_v appear_v their_o work_n be_v to_o serve_v table_n ability_n or_o aptness_n to_o teach_v be_v not_o mention_v among_o their_o qualification_n as_o it_o be_v in_o those_o of_o a_o bishop_n or_o presbyter_n 1_o tim._n 3.2_o the_o apostle_n mention_n several_a character_n that_o be_v common_a to_o both_o but_o distinguish_v the_o bishop_n from_o the_o deacon_n by_o this_o that_o the_o bishop_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d apt_a to_o teach_v which_o be_v not_o require_v in_o the_o deacon_n a_o evidence_n they_o be_v minister_n not_o of_o the_o word_n but_o of_o table_n 4._o the_o six_o general_n council_n of_o constantinople_n acknowledge_v the_o scripture-deacon_n to_o be_v no_o more_o than_o overseer_n of_o the_o poor_a thus_o the_o council_n see_v the_o book_n of_o the_o act_n mention_n seven_o deacon_n ordain_v by_o the_o apostle_n 692._o invenimus_fw-la eos_fw-la locutos_fw-la esse_fw-la non_fw-la de_fw-la viris_fw-la qui_fw-la ministrant_fw-la mysteriis_fw-la sed_fw-la de_fw-la ministerio_fw-la quod_fw-la in_o usu_fw-la mensarum_fw-la adhibeatur_fw-la sexta._fw-la syn._n in_o trullo_n can._n 16._o a._n d._n 692._o the_o council_n of_o neocesarea_n determine_v there_o aught_o to_o be_v seven_o in_o every_o church_n but_o we_o have_v adapt_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o father_n to_o the_o apostle_n expression_n do_v find_v that_o they_o speak_v not_o of_o those_o who_o minister_v in_o the_o sacred_a mystery_n but_o of_o such_o as_o serve_v at_o table_n thus_o chrysostom_n expound_v the_o place_n as_o they_o add_v there_o this_o testimony_n be_v the_o more_o considerable_a as_o not_o only_o contain_v the_o opinion_n of_o 166_o bishop_n who_o live_v about_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o the_o seven_o age_n but_o affirm_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o father_n of_o former_a age_n to_o be_v the_o same_o with_o they_o by_o all_o which_o it_o appear_v that_o deacon_n original_o be_v but_o overseer_n of_o the_o poor_a in_o future_a age_n the_o case_n be_v much_o alter_v the_o bishop_n affect_v to_o be_v guardian_n of_o the_o poor_a and_o to_o make_v the_o deacon_n amends_o admit_v they_o to_o baptise_v and_o preach_v the_o bishop_n omit_v preach_v and_o become_v servant_n of_o table_n and_o the_o deacon_n from_o serve_v of_o table_n step_v up_o into_o the_o pulpit_n and_o become_v preacher_n 5._o about_o the_o middle_n of_o the_o five_o age_n they_o be_v permit_v to_o read_v homily_n in_o the_o church_n but_o only_o in_o case_n of_o necessity_n as_o when_o the_o presbyter_n be_v disable_v by_o reason_n of_o some_o infirmity_n 4._o infirmity_n conc._n vasen_n can._n 4._o 6._o if_o the_o ordination_n of_o deacon_n as_o such_o make_v they_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n as_o the_o rector_n affirm_v how_o come_v the_o church_n of_o england_n to_o ordain_v they_o again_o before_o they_o be_v complete_a minister_n of_o the_o sacrament_n what_o precedent_n have_v they_o in_o scripture_n for_o this_o 7._o it_o be_v absurd_a to_o say_v that_o the_o ordination_n of_o deacon_n to_o serve_v table_n make_v they_o also_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n one_o individual_a ordination_n to_o one_o and_o the_o same_o work_n can_v confer_v two_o distinct_a power_n they_o may_v as_o well_o say_v the_o ordination_n of_o a_o parish-priest_n make_v he_o a_o diocesan_n bishop_n but_o let_v we_o hear_v the_o rector_n reason_n he_o think_v it_o be_v clear_a they_o be_v ordain_v not_o only_o to_o serve_v table_n but_o to_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n 1._o because_o it_o be_v immediate_o note_v say_v he_o that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n increase_v 4_o p._n 4_o v._o 7._o but_o he_o consider_v not_o that_o this_o be_v rather_o to_o be_v impute_v to_o the_o apostle_n give_v themselves_o continual_o to_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n and_o prayer_n ver._n 4._o have_v consign_v the_o service_n of_o table_n to_o the_o deacon_n they_o attend_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n more_o constant_o and_o with_o less_o distraction_n and_o than_o it_o follow_v the_o word_n of_o god_n increase_v v._o 7._o 2._o his_o next_o reason_n be_v stephen_n one_o of_o they_o ibid._n ibid._n do_v great_a wonder_n etc._n etc._n none_o be_v able_a to_o resist_v the_o wisdom_n by_o which_o he_o speak_v v._o 8_o 10._o it_o be_v not_o say_v that_o he_o preach_v to_o the_o people_n only_o that_o he_o dispute_v in_o the_o synagogue_n in_o defence_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o a_o private_a man_n may_v do_v v._n 9_o 1_o pet._n 3.15_o 3._o his_o three_o reason_n philip_n another_o of_o they_o afterward_o preach_v at_o samaria_n ch_n 8._o he_o do_v not_o preach_v at_o jerusalem_n but_o at_o samaria_n after_o he_o have_v leave_v jerusalem_n and_o cease_v to_o exercise_v the_o office_n of_o a_o deacon_n there_o act_v 8.4_o 5._o he_o may_v be_v advance_v to_o the_o degree_n of_o a_o evangelist_n act_v 21.8_o if_o you_o find_v one_o that_o be_v a_o presbyter_n half_a a_o year_n ago_o now_o exercise_v episcopal_a jurisdicition_n will_v you_o say_v that_o a_o presbyter_n as_o such_o have_v episcopal_a jurisdiction_n philip_n have_v serve_v table_n at_o jerusalem_n and_o afterward_o preach_v at_o samaria_n do_v it_o follow_v that_o he_o preach_v as_o a_o deacon_n when_o preach_v be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o office_n of_o a_o deacon_n as_o such_o bishop_n pearson_n confess_v he_o be_v a_o evangelist_n at_o this_o time_n 66._o time_n lect._n v._o in_o act._n p._n 66._o but_o suppose_v he_o have_v preach_v at_o jerusalem_n which_o doc_v not_o appear_v it_o be_v no_o more_o than_o what_o be_v usual_o do_v by_o all_o gift_a person_n in_o those_o extraordinary_a time_n apollo_n who_o be_v not_o perfect_o catechise_v in_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n nor_o so_o much_o as_o baptise_a with_o the_o baptism_n of_o christ_n and_o therefore_o not_o ordain_v by_o any_o apostle_n yet_o preach_v act_v 18.24_o 25._o grotius_n acknowledge_v that_o in_o those_o time_n to_o persrcution_n private_a person_n may_v preach_v and_o he_o quote_v to_o that_o purpose_n act_v 11.20_o 8.5_o 11.20_o in_o tali_fw-la cumstantiâ_fw-la evangelium_fw-la praedicare_fw-la non_fw-la diaconorum_fw-la tantum_fw-la sed_fw-la &_o privatorum_fw-la grot._n in_o act._n 8.5_o hilarius_n the_o roman_a deacon_n go_v high_a and_o say_v that_o at_o the_o first_o plant_n of_o christianity_n all_o be_v permit_v to_o preach_v baptise_v and_o explain_v the_o scripture_n in_o the_o congregation_n 1_o cor._n 14.24_o 4._o 14.24_o omnibus_fw-la inter_fw-la initia_fw-la concessum_fw-la est_fw-la &_o evangelizare_fw-la &_o baptizate_n &_o scripturas_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la explanare_fw-la hilar._n in_o eph._n 4._o origen_n be_v persecute_v from_o alexandria_n preach_v public_o at_o caesarea_n upon_o the_o desire_n of_o theoctistus_n bishop_n of_o the_o place_n before_o he_o be_v ordain_v when_o demetrius_n of_o alexandria_n censure_v the_o action_n as_o irregular_a theoctistus_n and_o alexander_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n justify_v it_o and_o produce_v several_a example_n of_o the_o same_o nature_n 14._o nature_n niceph._n eccl._n hist_n v._o 14._o a_o layman_n be_v allow_v to_o teach_v at_o the_o request_n of_o the_o clergy_n in_o a_o council_n of_o carthage_n hold_v about_o the_o year_n 436_o 98._o 436_o laicus_fw-la praesentibus_fw-la clerios_fw-la nisi_fw-la ipsis_fw-la rogantibusdocere_fw-la non_fw-la audeat_fw-la carth._n conc._n iu._n can._n 98._o 4._o his_o four_o reason_n because_o long_o after_o it_o be_v observe_v by_o luke_n that_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o seven_o as_o i_o understand_v he_o preach_v the_o word_n in_o phenice_n cyprus_n and_o at_o antioch_n 4._o p._n 4._o etc._n etc._n act_v 11.19_o luke_n say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d they_o which_o be_v seature_v abroad_o preach_v the_o word_n the_o rector_n make_v bold_a to_o pervert_v the_o text_n and_o say_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o seven_o preach_v the_o word_n and_o which_o be_v more_o unpardonable_a he_o put_v the_o word_n in_o a_o different_a character_n as_o if_o they_o be_v the_o word_n of_o luke_n he_o have_v no_o colour_n to_o foist_v his_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o rest_n into_o this_o text_n but_o it_o be_v apparent_o do_v upon_o design_n to_o support_v a_o unscriptural_a hypothesis_n it_o be_v more_o pardonable_a to_o misrepresent_v a_o hundred_o father_n than_o to_o alter_v one_o text_n of_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n he_o be_v a_o very_a bold_a man_n that_o dare_v put_v word_n in_o the_o mouth_n of_o inspire_a writer_n luke_n refer_v to_o act_n 8.1_o they_o be_v all_o seatter_v abroad_o except_o the_o apostle_n who_o be_v these_o all_o not_o the_o six_o deacon_n only_o 63_o only_o pear_n annal._n paul_n p._n 1_o &_o lect._n iv_o in_o act._n apost_n p._n 63_o what_o sense_n will_v it_o be_v to_o say_v all_z the_o
six_o deacon_n for_o stephen_n the_o seven_o be_v martyr_a be_v scatter_v except_o the_o apostle_n all_o be_v scatter_v that_o be_v all_o the_o 120_o which_o make_v up_o that_o famous_a council_n in_o act_n 1.15_o except_o the_o apostle_n loc_n apostle_n vid._n lighis_n in_o loc_n lucius_z of_o cyrene_n who_o be_v none_o of_o the_o seven_o deacon_n be_v one_o of_o those_o that_o be_v sc_a attere_v act_v 11.19_o 20._o and_o 13.1_o the_o rector_n will_v persuade_v they_o be_v only_o the_o six_o deacon_n that_o be_v scatter_v of_o which_o philip_n preach_v in_o samaria_n and_o he_o have_v find_v the_o rest_n in_o act_n 11.19_o we_o have_v see_v the_o invalidity_n of_o his_o four_o reason_n to_o prove_v deacon_n to_o be_v minister_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n he_o be_v apt_a to_o believe_v these_o deacon_n be_v afterward_o call_v elder_n 6._o p._n 6._o as_o have_v power_n to_o minister_v the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n first_o mention_v act_n 11.30_o but_o it_o will_v not_o follow_v that_o they_o be_v equal_a with_o the_o apostle_n they_o that_o be_v so_o dispose_v may_v take_v conjecture_n for_o article_n of_o faith_n but_o we_o have_v prove_v the_o deacon_n to_o be_v very_o different_a from_o presbyter_n and_o if_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v not_o think_v they_o so_o she_o will_v not_o ordain_v they_o over_o again_o to_o make_v presbyter_n of_o they_o who_o ever_o affirm_v presbyter_n to_o be_v equal_a with_o the_o apostle_n dare_v he_o say_v bishop_n be_v equal_a with_o they_o ordination_n at_o least_o must_v be_v except_v say_v the_o rector_n i_o always_o think_v the_o apostle_n excel_v presbyter_n in_o far_o great_a thing_n than_o that_o of_o ordination_n but_o if_o you_o be_v so_o good_a nature_a as_o to_o allow_v the_o rector_n that_o the_o apostle_n be_v superior_a to_o presbyter_n in_o point_n of_o ordination_n and_o entrust_v none_o but_o the_o bishop_n with_o it_o after_o their_o decease_n he_o be_v even_o content_a that_o a_o presbyter_n shall_v be_v equal_a with_o a_o apostle_n in_o other_o respect_n though_o elder_n be_v first_o mention_v act_v 11.30_o they_o be_v in_o be_v before_o they_o be_v speak_v of_o as_o the_o ordinary_a settle_a governor_n of_o the_o church_n mr._n g._n proceed_v to_o prove_v that_o presbyter_n can_v not_o ordain_v 8_o p._n 7_o 8_o because_o philip_n the_o deacon_n can_v not_o confer_v the_o holy_a ghost_n upon_o the_o believe_a samaritan_n the_o apostle_n send_v peter_n and_o john_n who_o by_o prayer_n and_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n confer_v the_o holy_a ghost_n upon_o they_o act_v 8.12_o 15_o 17._o and_o thereby_o ordain_v they_o therefore_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n and_o ordination_n be_v lodge_v in_o the_o apostle_n only_o or_o as_o supreme_a 1._o he_o be_v not_o sure_a ordination_n be_v intend_v there_o himself_o own_v that_o some_o may_v 7_o p._n 7_o and_o with_o reason_n believe_v it_o confirmation_n so_o do_v dr._n hammond_n and_o seucral_a other_o and_o if_o we_o understand_v confirmation_n by_o this_o miraculous_a confer_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n his_o argument_n be_v spoil_v 2._o if_o ordination_n be_v intend_v it_o no_o more_o prejudices_fw-la presbyter_n power_n of_o ordain_v than_o it_o do_v that_o of_o the_o bishop_n for_o neither_o can_v confer_v those_o extraordinary_a gift_n 3._o all_o that_o have_v power_n of_o ordination_n have_v not_o power_n of_o give_v the_o holy_a ghost_n evangelist_n be_v trust_v with_o the_o former_a but_o not_o with_o the_o latter_a timothy_n and_o titus_n ordain_v but_o do_v not_o give_v the_o holy_a ghost_n he_o fancy_n that_o simon_n magus_n desire_v the_o ordain_v power_n v._o 19_o give_v i_o this_o power_n what_o power_n what_o power_n 8._o p._n 8._o say_v the_o rector_n not_o power_n to_o labour_v in_o the_o word_n and_o doctrine_n and_o to_o administer_v the_o holy_a sacrament_n like_a enough_o for_o simon_n magus_n as_o little_a care_v for_o that_o as_o some_o other_o who_o have_v possess_v themselves_o of_o that_o power_n he_o so_o much_o covet_v what_o power_n be_v it_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o you_o will_v expect_v some_o rare_a discovery_n have_v raise_v our_o expectation_n to_o a_o great_a height_n at_o length_n he_o resolve_v the_o question_n and_o tell_v we_o it_o be_v a_o power_n of_o confer_v that_o power_n i._n e._n as_o he_o explain_v it_o that_o on_o whosoever_o he_o lay_v his_o hand_n he_o may_v be_v ordain_v to_o the_o ministry_n that_o be_v in_o plain_a term_n he_o desire_v to_o be_v make_v a_o bishop_n and_o to_o be_v entrust_v with_o the_o ordain_v power_n i_o question_v whether_o the_o power_n then_o be_v so_o profitable_a as_o it_o have_v prove_v since_o however_o we_o be_v oblige_v to_o this_o gentleman_n for_o help_v we_o to_o so_o clear_a a_o notion_n of_o simony_n iii_o he_o find_v another_o ordination_n in_o act_n 9.17_o 9_o p._n 8_o 9_o where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o ananias_n lay_v his_o hand_n upon_o saul_n this_o may_v he_o to_o ordain_v he_o for_o he_o lay_v his_o hand_n on_o he_o not_o only_o that_o he_o may_v receive_v his_o sight_n but_o be_v also_o fill_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o i_o desire_v the_o reader_n to_o observe_v that_o according_a to_o this_o hypothesis_n saul_n be_v ordain_v before_o he_o be_v baptise_a he_o be_v ordain_v as_o he_o call_v it_o v._o 17._o and_o be_v baptise_a after_o ananias_n have_v lay_v his_o hand_n on_o he_o v._o 18._o that_o be_v he_o be_v first_o make_v a_o apostle_n than_o a_o christian_a he_o make_v ananias_n but_o a_o private_a believer_n or_o disciple_n 9_o p._n 9_o his_o be_v call_v a_o disciple_n v._o 10._o be_v no_o evidence_n of_o it_o for_o the_o apostle_n be_v so_o call_v act_v 1.15_o how_o come_v he_o to_o forget_v that_o dorotheus_n call_v he_o a_o bishop_n of_o damascus_n this_o will_v have_v something_o help_v his_o hypothesis_n see_v he_o be_v tesolve_v to_o have_v he_o ordain_v before_o he_o be_v baptise_a even_o let_v it_o pass_v for_o a_o episcopal_a ordination_n but_o that_o which_o spoil_v all_o be_v paul_n say_v of_o himself_o that_o he_o be_v a_o apostle_n not_o of_o man_n neither_o by_o man_n but_o by_o jesus_n christ_n and_o god_n the_o father_n gal._n ●_o 1_o iv_o in_o the_o next_o place_n he_o consider_v the_o ordination_n in_o act_n 13.1_o 2_o 3._o 10._o p._n 10._o now_o there_o be_v at_o antioch_n certain_a prophet_n and_o teacher_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n say_v unto_o they_o separate_a i_n barnabas_n and_o saul_n j._n o._n argue_v from_o this_o instance_n that_o presbyter_n have_v power_n to_o ordain_v for_o the_o ordainer_n be_v prophet_n and_o teacher_n now_o teacher_n be_v ordinary_a presbyter_n who_o be_v distinguish_v from_o prophet_n and_o other_o extraordinary_a officer_n 1_o cor._n 12.28_o eph._n 4.11_o what_o say_v mr._n g._n to_o this_o even_o nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n ibid._n ibid._n the_o person_n here_o speak_v of_o say_v he_o be_v teacher_n that_o be_v ordinary_a minister_n general_o speak_v but_o call_v prophet_n because_o they_o receive_v this_o special_a command_n from_o christ_n to_o ordain_v barnabas_n and_o saul_n 1._o he_o confound_v prophet_n and_o teacher_n which_o be_v distinguish_v here_o and_o in_o 1_o cor._n 12.28_o eph._n 4.11_o prophet_n be_v extraordinary_a teacher_n ordinary_a officer_n this_o gentleman_n to_o serve_v a_o turn_n make_v they_o one_o and_o the_o same_o if_o this_o be_v not_o to_o pervert_v the_o scripture_n i_o know_v not_o what_o be_v luke_n say_v there_o be_v at_o antioch_n certain_a prophet_n and_o teacher_n that_o be_v if_o we_o may_v believe_v the_o rector_n prophet_n and_o prophet_n for_o the_o teacher_n be_v prophet_n say_v he_o 2._o the_o teacher_n be_v call_v prophet_n say_v he_o they_o be_v so_o call_v by_o he_o and_o not_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 3._o they_o be_v call_v prophet_n because_o they_o receive_v this_o special_a command_n from_o christ_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o he_o think_v how_o can_v he_o prove_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v speak_v by_o immediate_a revelation_n to_o the_o teacher_n here_o the_o text_n speak_v nothing_o of_o it_o loc_fw-la dixit_fw-la spiritus_fw-la per_fw-la prophet_n as_o istos_fw-la grot._n in_o loc_fw-la it_o be_v most_o reasonable_a to_o think_v he_o signify_v his_o mind_n by_o one_o or_o more_o of_o the_o prophet_n to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o minister_n then_o to_o fancy_n he_o advance_v the_o teacher_n into_o the_o order_n of_o prophet_n for_o the_o time_n have_v the_o revelation_n be_v communicate_v to_o all_o in_o common_a what_o need_v the_o evangelist_n to_o have_v call_v the_o ordainer_n prophet_n and_o teacher_n it_o will_v have_v be_v enough_o to_o call_v they_o prophet_n but_o there_o be_v both_o in_o antioch_n prophet_n to_o who_o the_o revelation_n come_v and_o
teacher_n or_o ordinary_a presbyter_n who_o be_v include_v in_o the_o command_n of_o separate_a paul_n and_o barnabas_n for_o the_o apostleship_n of_o the_o gentile_n this_o ordination_n which_o be_v in_o favour_n of_o the_o gentile_a world_n be_v intend_v for_o a_o precedent_n to_o the_o gentile_a church_n in_o after_o age_n as_o learned_a dr._n lightfoot_n observe_v 289._o observe_v vol_n 1._o p._n 289._o this_o instance_n of_o ordination_n by_o presbyter_n remain_v firm_a and_o unshaken_a and_o all_o that_o mr._n g._n have_v say_v against_o it_o serve_v only_o to_o discover_v the_o strength_n of_o it_o he_o undertake_v to_o show_v the_o difference_n between_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n but_o not_o a_o word_n of_o difference_n between_o the_o prophet_n and_o the_o teacher_n that_o will_v have_v discover_v the_o fallacy_n of_o his_o reason_n he_o say_v apostle_n and_o prophet_n have_v a_o extraordinary_a assistance_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n 11._o p._n 10_o 11._o yet_o with_o this_o difference_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v fix_v and_o habitual_a their_o character_n indelible_a and_o their_o office_n perpetual_a i_o expect_v he_o will_v have_v say_v a_o infallible_a assistance_n but_o it_o may_v be_v he_o intend_v that_o by_o extraordinary_a though_o the_o follow_a word_n be_v a_o little_a inconsistent_a and_o divest_v the_o apostle_n of_o the_o extraordinary_a assistance_n of_o the_o spirit_n except_o in_o some_o case_n the_o apostle_n say_v he_o for_o the_o most_o part_n 11._o p._n 11._o act_v as_o it_o be_v according_a to_o their_o own_o discretion_n what_o without_o the_o conduct_n of_o the_o spirit_n the_o rector_n shall_v have_v have_v the_o discretion_n to_o have_v conceal_v so_o dangerous_a a_o position_n which_o strike_v at_o the_o foundation_n of_o our_o faith_n this_o principle_n natural_o lead_v to_o deism_n and_o irreligion_n but_o worse_a follow_v i_o suppose_v say_v he_o in_o matter_n of_o importance_n and_o in_o doctrine_n essential_a guide_v by_o the_o spirit_n i_o hope_v he_o do_v not_o mean_a as_o he_o speak_v do_v he_o but._n suppose_v they_o be_v guide_v by_o the_o spirit_n admit_v he_o mean_v by_o suppose_v his_o take_n it_o for_o grant_v than_o the_o meaning_n be_v they_o be_v guide_v by_o the_o spirit_n only_o in_o two_o case_n 1._o in_o matter_n of_o importance_n i._n e._n in_o practical_o if_o i_o underftand_v he_o ibid._n ibid._n we_o conceive_v all_o the_o rule_v the_o holy_a apostle_n leave_v its_o about_o the_o agenda_fw-la of_o religion_n be_v give_v by_o inspiration_n and_o that_o all_o the_o practical_a duty_n they_o recommend_v to_o we_o be_v matter_n of_o importance_n to_o we_o they_o be_v so_o what_o they_o be_v to_o this_o gentleman_n he_o know_v best_o 2._o he_o suppose_v they_o be_v guide_v by_o the_o spirit_n in_o doctrine_n essential_a 1._o it_o be_v well_o he_o ascribe_v any_o of_o their_o doctrine_n to_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o god_n but_o why_o not_o all_o as_o well_o as_o some_o the_o spirit_n be_v promise_v they_o to_o guide_v they_o into_o all_o truth_n john_n 16.13_o jesus_n christ_n say_v the_o spirit_n shall_v guide_v they_o into_o all_o truth_n no_o say_v mr._n g._n the_o spirit_n guide_v they_o in_o doctrine_n essential_a only_o christ_n say_v the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v teach_v you_o all_o thing_n john_n 14.26_o mr._n g._n say_v not_o all_o thing_n but_o matter_n of_o importance_n and_o doctrine_n essential_a only_o doubtless_o the_o lord_n jesus_n be_v as_o good_a as_o his_o word_n and_o give_v the_o infallible_a assistance_n of_o his_o spirit_n to_o the_o bless_a apostle_n in_o all_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o practice_n they_o recommend_v to_o we_o though_o mr._n g._n do_v not_o believe_v it_o his_o unbelief_n can_v make_v the_o faith_n of_o god_n without_o effect_n let_v god_n be_v true_a and_o every_o man_n a_o liar_n 3.3.4_o rom._n 3.3.4_o 2._o according_a to_o his_o n_z retched_a supposition_n the_o holy_a apostle_n may_v be_v mistake_v in_o doctrine_n not_o essential_a for_o they_o have_v not_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o he_o suggest_v and_o if_o they_o may_v be_v mistake_v who_o know_v but_o they_o be_v mistake_v and_o may_v obtrude_v error_n instead_o of_o truth_n upon_o the_o world_n and_o if_o so_o how_o can_v it_o be_v prove_v to_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o believe_v those_o doctrine_n not_o essential_a but_o thanks_o be_v to_o god_n we_o have_v a_o sure_a word_n of_o promise_n and_o consequent_o a_o sure_a rule_n of_o faith_n and_o practice_n whatever_o the_o rector_n insinuate_v to_o the_o contrary_a in_o favour_n of_o atheistical_a spirit_n 3._o the_o learned_a be_v not_o agree_v about_o the_o number_n of_o doctrine_n essential_a those_o be_v doctrine_n essential_a to_o christianity_n with_o some_o that_o be_v but_o integral_n if_o i_o may_v so_o say_v with_o other_o all_o protestant_n be_v agree_v that_o essential_a doctrine_n be_v but_o few_o so_o that_o most_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christianity_n be_v but_o discretionary_a opinion_n and_o no_o dictate_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n with_o this_o man._n tell_v it_o not_o in_o gath_n lest_o the_o uncircumcised_a rejoice_v 4._o admit_v the_o creed_n call_v the_o apostle_n be_v a_o summary_n of_o essential_a doctrine_n it_o do_v not_o express_o assert_v the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o therefore_o the_o socinian_o can_v free_o subscribe_v it_o will_v the_o rector_n say_v the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o personality_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v doctrine_n not_o essential_a and_o consequent_o not_o deliver_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n 5._o be_v the_o superiority_n of_o bishop_n a_o essential_a doctrine_n if_o it_o be_v they_o be_v no_o christian_n who_o do_v not_o believe_v it_o for_o they_o reject_v a_o essential_a doctrine_n of_o christianity_n but_o no_o sober_a protestant_n will_v affirm_v it_o for_o this_o be_v to_o damn_v all_o the_o foreign_a reform_a church_n who_o believe_v it_o not_o if_o it_o be_v no_o essential_a doctrine_n as_o certain_o it_o be_v not_o we_o be_v leave_v to_o our_o liberty_n whether_o we_o will_v believe_v it_o or_o not_o for_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o guide_v by_o the_o spirit_n in_o deliver_v it_o according_a to_o mr._n g's_o hypothesis_n he_o proceed_v to_o describe_v the_o prophet_n their_o power_n say_v he_o be_v not_o constant_a they_o speak_v only_o as_o the_o spirit_n move_v 11._o p._n 11._o which_o if_o he_o cease_v to_o do_v they_o be_v no_o long_o prophet_n thus_o the_o teacher_n at_o antioch_n ordinary_a minister_n and_o under_o the_o apostle_n yet_o be_v move_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n become_v prophet_n and_o ordain_v barnabas_n and_o saul_n here_o he_o mistake_v also_o 1._o in_o make_v the_o prophet_n to_o be_v only_o such_o while_n they_o be_v actual_o inspire_v there_o be_v prophet_n by_o office_n and_o they_o be_v so_o call_v when_o the_o spirit_n of_o prophecy_n do_v not_o actual_o move_v they_o 2_o king_n 3.11_o 15._o 1_o cor._n 14.29_o 32._o their_o power_n be_v constant_a though_o the_o exercise_n of_o it_o be_v not_o so_o nathan_n be_v call_v a_o prophet_n when_o the_o spirit_n of_o prophecy_n be_v not_o actual_o upon_o he_o 2_o sam._n 7.2_o 3._o 2._o all_o inspiration_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v not_o make_v a_o prophet_n balaam_n and_o caiaphas_n be_v inspire_v but_o no_o divine_a prophet_n ananias_n be_v move_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o lay_v his_o hand_n on_o paul_n for_o recover_v of_o his_o sight_n but_o it_o do_v not_o appear_v that_o he_o be_v a_o prophet_n he_o be_v no_o where_o so_o call_v god_n speak_v to_o he_o in_o a_o vision_n do_v not_o make_v he_o a_o prophet_n as_o mr._n g._n fancy_n for_o so_o he_o do_v to_o cornelius_n who_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v a_o prophet_n that_o at_o that_o time_n he_o be_v not_o a_o christian_a act_n 10.3_o 4._o admit_v the_o ordinary_a minister_n at_o antioch_n be_v inward_o move_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o ordain_v paul_n and_o barnabas_n which_o be_v not_o say_v in_o the_o text_n that_o do_v not_o make_v they_o prophet_n for_o luke_n distinguish_v between_o the_o prophet_n and_o the_o teacher_n though_o mr._n g._n design_o confound_v they_o nor_o do_v a_o particular_a direction_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n constitute_v prophet_n as_o appear_v in_o ananias_n a_o disciple_n and_o it_o may_v be_v a_o teacher_n and_o in_o cornelius_n neither_o disciple_n nor_o teacher_n 3._o he_o call_v the_o teacher_n at_o antioch_n ordinary_a minister_n and_o yet_o say_v they_o be_v prophet_n that_o be_v extraordinary_a minister_n for_o himself_o own_v prophet_n to_o be_v extraordinary_a officer_n one_o will_v think_v if_o they_o be_v ordinary_a minister_n they_o be_v not_o extraordinary_a if_o extraordinary_a they_o be_v not_o ordinary_a i_o leave_v it_o to_o
he_o that_o can_v to_o reconcile_v these_o contradiction_n v._o his_o next_o instance_n of_o ordination_n be_v from_o act_n 14.23_o 12._o p._n 12._o the_o ordination_n mention_v there_o be_v by_o apostle_n and_o not_o by_o presbyter_n as_o he_o say_v this_o instance_n make_v as_o little_a for_o he_o as_o the_o former_a because_o 1._o there_o be_v good_a reason_n why_o the_o apostle_n alone_o shall_v ordain_v presbyter_n in_o church_n that_o have_v no_o minister_n in_o they_o until_o the_o apostle_n have_v constitute_v they_o presbyter_n can_v not_o ordain_v before_o they_o be_v in_o be_v he_o be_v aware_a of_o this_o reason_n and_o allow_v these_o church_n have_v no_o presbyter_n in_o they_o at_o this_o time_n 13._o p._n 13._o but_o this_o say_v he_o be_v not_o the_o reason_n for_o then_o philip_n will_v have_v lay_v hand_n on_o those_o that_o be_v ordain_v at_o samaria_n the_o instance_n of_o philip_n we_o consider_v before_o if_o he_o be_v a_o deacon_n as_o he_o affirm_v all_o will_v own_o he_o have_v no_o power_n of_o ordination_n if_o a_o evangelist_n as_o it_o shall_v seem_v from_o act_n 21.8_o all_o will_v own_v evangelist_n may_v ordain_v but_o they_o can_v not_o give_v the_o extraordinary_a gift_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n which_o be_v give_v by_o the_o apostle_n 2._o the_o apostle_n make_v elder_n in_o every_o church_n with_o the_o suffrage_n of_o the_o people_n so_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o we_o render_v ordain_v act_v 14.23_o signify_v loc_fw-la signify_v significat_fw-la hos_fw-la suffragiis_fw-la electos_fw-la esse_fw-la erasmus_n in_o loc_fw-la the_o multitude_n of_o believer_n choose_v the_o deacon_n who_o mr._n g._n will_v have_v to_o be_v the_o same_o with_o these_o elder_n before_o the_o apostle_n ordain_v they_o and_o so_o they_o do_v the_o two_o candidate_n for_o the_o apostleship_n act_v 1_o mr._n g._n allow_v this_o power_n of_o the_o people_n now_o if_o these_o ordination_n be_v precedent_n unto_o we_o as_o he_o take_v they_o to_o be_v they_o be_v but_o ill_o follow_v by_o our_o episcopal_a ordainer_n for_o the_o election_n of_o the_o people_n seldom_o precede_v their_o ordination_n 3._o they_o ordain_v elder_n in_o every_o church_n not_o one_o but_o many_o and_o why_o not_o bishop_n also_o if_o they_o have_v be_v necessary_a it_o be_v evident_a there_o be_v none_o at_o this_o time_n the_o apostle_n leave_v the_o church_n under_o the_o care_n or_o these_o elder_n without_o superior_a bishop_n it_o will_v be_v say_v these_o elder_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o apostle_n and_o be_v not_o the_o bishop_n subject_n to_o the_o apostle_n also_o i_o hope_v none_o will_v say_v they_o be_v equal_a to_o they_o how_o come_v the_o apostle_n not_o to_o ordain_v a_o bishop_n in_o every_o church_n when_o they_o themselves_o make_v but_o a_o short_a stay_n with_o they_o 24._o act_n 14.23_o 24._o they_o can_v not_o personal_o oversee_v they_o all_o and_o if_o bishop_n have_v be_v necessary_a in_o their_o absence_n doubtless_o they_o will_v have_v appoint_v they_o it_o will_v be_v say_v they_o intend_v to_o return_v to_o visit_v they_o again_o but_o when_o they_o they_o take_v their_o last_o leave_n of_o they_o than_o they_o appoint_v bishop_n for_o their_o successor_n this_o be_v notorious_o false_a for_o the_o apostle_n paul_n commit_v the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n to_o the_o government_n of_o the_o presbyter_n there_o when_o he_o take_v his_o last_o leave_n of_o they_o intend_v to_o see_v they_o no_o more_o 28._o act_n 20.17_o 25_o 28._o whether_o he_o do_v see_v they_o again_o or_o no_o be_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n for_o it_o be_v certain_a he_o think_v he_o shall_v see_v they_o no_o more_o how_o come_v he_o than_o not_o to_o leave_v a_o superior_a bishop_n over_o the_o presbyter_n of_o ephesus_n for_o his_o successor_n when_o he_o be_v take_v his_o final_a leave_n of_o they_o no_o one_o instance_n can_v be_v give_v in_o all_o the_o new_a testament_n of_o the_o apostle_n ordain_v a_o single_a person_n to_o succeed_v they_o as_o a_o fix_a officer_n in_o the_o government_n of_o any_o one_o church_n when_o they_o take_v their_o last_o leave_n of_o it_o when_o the_o apostle_n leave_v timothy_n at_o ephesus_n he_o intend_v to_o come_v again_o 1_o tim._n 3.14_o when_o titus_n have_v ordain_v elder_n in_o crete_n to_o govern_v the_o church_n there_o the_o apostle_n call_v he_o away_o tit._n 3.12_o his_o next_o act_n of_o church_n government_n which_o he_o find_v in_o act_n 15._o 13._o p._n 13._o we_o have_v consider_v before_o none_o that_o i_o know_v of_o have_v argue_v for_o presbyter_n ordain_v from_o this_o place_n as_o he_o imagine_v they_o may_v he_o grant_v that_o elder_n have_v a_o share_n in_o the_o deliberative_a and_o legislative_a part_n of_o church-government_n 14._o p._n 14._o but_o seem_v loath_a to_o trust_v they_o with_o the_o executive_a power_n he_o give_v they_o the_o great_a and_o more_o difficult_a part_n of_o church-government_n viz._n a_o power_n of_o make_v law_n and_o deny_v they_o the_o easy_a and_o less_o honourable_a power_n of_o execute_v those_o law_n he_o observe_v 15._o p._n 15._o the_o elder_n be_v subordinate_a to_o the_o apostle_n who_o ever_o deny_v it_o and_o so_o be_v timothy_n and_o titus_n his_o suppose_a bishop_n the_o epistle_n write_v to_o they_o be_v convince_a evidence_n of_o their_o subordination_n to_o paul_n 1_o tim._n 1.18_o and_o 4.16_o and_o 6.13_o 14._o 2_o tim._n 4.1_o 9_o 13._o he_o charge_v he_o order_v he_o to_o bring_v his_o cloak_n and_o personal_o to_o attend_v he_o so_o he_o enjoin_v titus_n to_o attend_v he_o titus_n 3.12_o his_o epistle_n to_o both_o be_v in_o a_o stile_n at_o least_o equal_o authoritative_a with_o that_o which_o bishop_n use_v in_o their_o pastoral_a letter_n to_o their_o clergy_n and_o therefore_o all_o the_o reason_n of_o mr._n g._n from_o the_o subordination_n of_o presbyter_n to_o the_o apostle_n be_v impertinent_a for_o timothy_n and_o titus_n who_o he_o call_v bishop_n be_v subordinate_a to_o the_o apostle_n so_o that_o if_o presbyter_n have_v no_o power_n of_o government_n no_o more_o have_v bishop_n for_o these_o be_v under_o the_o apostle_n also_o he_o say_v james_n be_v not_o the_o apostle_n 16._o p._n 16._o but_o brother_n of_o christ_n paul_n reckon_v he_o among_o the_o apostle_n gal._n 1.19_o other_o of_o the_o apostle_n see_v i_o none_o save_v james_n the_o lord_n brother_n bishop_n pearson_n observe_v that_o the_o opinion_n that_o make_v he_o no_o apostle_n take_v rise_v from_o the_o fictitious_a write_n of_o clemens_n lect._n in_o act._n apost_n p._n 58._o vi_o he_o sind_v a_o ordination_n in_o act_n 19.6_o 17._o p._n 17._o 7._o in_o which_o paul_n only_o lay_v his_o hand_n on_o twelve_o person_n at_o ephesus_n and_o not_o timothy_n and_o erastus_n who_o be_v with_o pául_a at_o this_o time_n act_v 19.22_o 1._o it_o be_v not_o say_v that_o timothy_n and_o erastus_n be_v with_o paul_n when_o he_o lay_v his_o hand_n on_o those_o twelve_o man_n act_v 19.22_o do_v not_o prove_v it_o for_o it_o speak_v of_o paul_n send_v they_o to_o macedonia_n which_o be_v about_o two_o year_n after_o act_v 19_o 10_o 21_o 22._o 2._o but_o suppose_v they_o be_v paul_n lay_v hand_n on_o those_o twelve_o man_n to_o confer_v the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n on_o they_o which_z timothy_n and_o erastus_n can_v not_o do_v 19.6_o act._n 19.6_o this_o power_n be_v peculiar_a to_o the_o apostle_n 8.17_o act._n 8.17_o we_o do_v not_o read_v that_o any_o prophet_n or_o evangelist_n be_v ever_o entrust_v with_o this_o power_n 68_o power_n pear_n lect._n v._o in_o act._n p._n 68_o much_o less_o be_v ordinary_a officer_n the_o case_n of_o ananias_n be_v singular_a and_o depend_v on_o a_o particular_a revelation_n which_o be_v a_o evidence_n that_o the_o power_n of_o give_v the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v not_o inherent_a in_o he_o as_o in_o the_o apostle_n act_n 9.17_o 3._o if_o there_o be_v any_o force_n in_o this_o argument_n it_o exclude_v bishop_n as_o well_o as_o presbyter_n from_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n for_o neither_o of_o they_o can_v nor_o can_v confer_v the_o extraordinary_a gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o be_v give_v by_o the_o apostle_n hand_n vii_o he_o think_v that_o the_o corinthian_a elder_n have_v no_o power_n of_o excommunication_n 17._o p._n 17._o paul_n decree_v it_o say_v he_o and_o command_v they_o to_o confirm_v and_o publish_v it_o 1_o cor._n 5.3_o 4_o 5._o 1._o if_o they_o have_v no_o power_n why_o do_v the_o apostle_n reprove_v they_o for_o not_o do_v it_o 1_o cor._n 5.2_o and_o enjoin_v they_o to_o avoid_v disorderly_a walker_n ver_fw-la 13._o and_o to_o judge_v they_o that_o be_v within_o ver_fw-la 14._o to_o judge_n be_v to_o decree_n as_o the_o rector_n expound_v it_o in_o v._o 3._o
bare_o assert_v and_o not_o prove_v ii_o he_o examine_v the_o meaning_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d prophecy_n 21._o p._n 21._o if_o timothy_n be_v ordain_v but_o once_o then_o say_v he_o by_o prophecy_n signify_v by_o prophet_n the_o abstract_n for_o the_o concrete_a and_o these_o prophet_n be_v paul_n and_o silas_n i_o add_v say_v he_o the_o presbytery_n here_o mention_v or_o presbyter_n themselves_o may_v have_v be_v prophet_n too_o 22._o p._n 22._o and_o ordain_v timothy_n according_a to_o prophecy_n 1._o let_v we_o see_v how_o the_o word_n run_v with_o this_o explication_n neglect_v not_o the_o gift_n that_o be_v in_o thou_o which_o be_v give_v thou_o by_o prophet_n with_o the_o lay_n on_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o prophet_n profound_a sense_n he_o be_v resolve_v to_o make_v apostle_n or_o prophet_n of_o all_o that_o be_v concern_v in_o ordination_n but_o the_o mischief_n on_o it_o be_v the_o bishop_n who_o cause_n he_o plead_v be_v neither_o one_o nor_o tother_o prophecy_n with_o he_o signify_v prophet_n and_o the_o presbyter_n be_v prophet_n so_o that_o timothy_n be_v ordain_v by_o prophet_n with_o prophet_n the_o rector_n have_v high_o oblige_v the_o learned_a world_n by_o this_o famous_a commentary_n if_o you_o shall_v ask_v why_o he_o degrade_v paul_n a_o apostle_n into_o a_o inferior_a order_n of_o prophet_n i_o hope_v it_o will_v satisfy_v you_o that_o he_o have_v make_v amends_o by_o exalt_v inferior_a presbyter_n into_o a_o superior_a order_n of_o prophet_n one_o while_o paul_n be_v a_o ordinary_a minister_n with_o he_o another_z while_o a_o prophet_n and_o sometime_o he_o be_v content_a provide_v he_o do_v not_o stand_v in_o the_o way_n of_o his_o belove_a episcopacy_n he_o shall_v be_v a_o apostle_n 2._o the_o truth_n be_v by_o prophecy_n respect_v the_o prophecy_n that_o go_v before_o of_o timothy_n 1_o tim._n 1.18_o it_o seem_v they_o be_v many_o if_o we_o respect_v the_o person_n prophesy_v and_o therefore_o call_v prophecy_n and_o but_o one_o if_o we_o consider_v the_o thing_n prophesy_v and_o therefore_o call_v prophecy_n 4.14_o prophecy_n est_fw-la in_o 1_o tim._n 4.14_o the_o text_n do_v not_o say_v who_o these_o prophet_n be_v but_o the_o rector_n a_o man_n of_o happy_a invention_n have_v find_v they_o out_o and_o assure_v we_o they_o be_v paul_n and_o silas_n iii_o he_o let_v we_o see_v what_o we_o be_v to_o understand_v by_o presbytery_n it_o be_v a_o word_n borrow_a say_v he_o from_o the_o jewish_a church_n 23._o p._n 23._o moses_n take_v the_o head_n of_o the_o twelve_o tribe_n to_o be_v assistant_n to_o he_o in_o the_o government_n unto_o these_o answer_v the_o twelve_o apostle_n but_o at_o length_n god_n command_v bim_n to_o choose_v seventy_o elder_n of_o the_o people_n num._n 11.16_o it_o be_v worth_a our_o remark_n here_o 1._o that_o he_o make_v christ_n and_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n to_o answer_v unto_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o the_o inferior_a priest_n p._n 1_o 2._o and_o he_o tell_v we_o it_o be_v manifest_v it_o be_v so_o p._n 2._o but_o now_o by_o a_o new_a manifestation_n he_o tell_v we_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n answer_v the_o head_n of_o the_o twelve_o tribe_n 2._o where_o do_v he_o find_v that_o moses_n take_v the_o head_n of_o the_o twelve_o tribe_n to_o be_v his_o assistant_n in_o the_o government_n before_o the_o seventy_o elder_n be_v choose_v moses_n himself_o give_v a_o different_a account_n he_o say_v he_o judge_v the_o people_n alone_o until_o jethro_n his_o father_n in_o law_n advise_v he_o to_o join_v other_o with_o he_o in_o the_o government_n and_o that_o thereupon_o he_o choose_v not_o twelve_o head_n of_o the_o several_a tribe_n but_o ruler_n of_o thousand_o ruler_n of_o hundred_o of_o fifty_n and_o of_o ten_o ex._n 18.13_o 25._o deut._n 1.15_o that_o there_o be_v head_n of_o the_o twelve_o tribe_n every_o body_n know_v but_o that_o these_o be_v choose_v exclusive_a or_o other_o to_o be_v moses_n his_o assistant_n in_o the_o government_n be_v a_o new_a discovery_n which_o no_o body_n know_v before_o we_o will_v not_o envy_v the_o rector_n the_o honour_n of_o be_v the_o first_o discoverer_n of_o this_o cabbala_n 3._o the_o seventy_o elder_n of_o the_o people_n to_o who_o the_o presbytery_n answer_v be_v choose_v as_o himself_o confess_v to_o be_v assistant_n to_o moses_n in_o the_o government_n this_o instance_n of_o his_o own_o produce_v evince_v that_o presbyter_n have_v power_n of_o government_n the_o jewish_a sanhedrin_n be_v the_o supreme_a court_n of_o judicature_n among_o the_o jew_n and_o be_v entrust_v with_o the_o power_n of_o ordain_v elder_n at_o first_o every_o one_o that_o be_v regular_o ordain_v himself_o have_v the_o power_n of_o ordain_v his_o disciple_n but_o in_o the_o time_n of_o hillel_n it_o be_v resolve_v that_o none_o may_v ordain_v without_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o nasi_n or_o precedent_n of_o the_o sanhedrn_n or_o a_o licence_n from_o he_o 1._o he_o seld._n the_o syned_a ii_o 7._o §_o 1._o if_o the_o presbytery_n answer_v the_o sanhedrin_n as_o the_o rector_n confess_v it_o do_v the_o power_n of_o government_n and_o particular_o of_o ordination_n belong_v unto_o it_o he_o say_v the_o jew_n call_v that_o celebrate_a council_n in_o their_o own_o language_n 24._o p._n 24._o the_o sanedrim_n but_o the_o n._n t._n and_o the_o greek_a tongue_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d he_o seem_v to_o make_v sanhedrin_n so_o the_o jew_n write_v it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o not_o sanedrin_n as_o he_o do_v a_o hebrew_a word_n whereas_o it_o be_v the_o corruption_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o a_o hebrew_n dialect_n i_o mention_v this_o only_a by_o the_o by_o to_o give_v the_o reader_n a_o taste_n of_o the_o learned_a rector_n skill_n in_o philology_n he_o add_v that_o moses_n be_v head_n ibid._n ibid._n and_o a_o part_n of_o his_o council_n of_o seventy_o yea_o that_o christ_n himself_o who_o be_v also_o a_o prophet_n lice_n unto_o moses_n have_v twelve_o apostle_n and_o seventy_o disciple_n who_o make_v up_o a_o presbytery_n 1._o in_o act_n 22.30_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v express_o distinguish_v from_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v v._o 5._o 2._o moses_n be_v a_o type_n of_o christ_n and_o as_o he_o be_v head_n of_o the_o council_n of_o seventy_o so_o be_v christ_n of_o the_o presbytery_n it_o be_v improper_o say_v that_o moses_n be_v part_n of_o the_o seventy_o for_o there_o be_v seventy_o or_o seventy_o two_o beside_o moses_n 3._o the_o seventy_o disciple_n answer_v the_o jewish_a presbytery_n with_o he_o above_o but_o now_o find_v he_o have_v yield_v too_o much_o he_o correct_v himself_o and_o make_v the_o twelve_o apostle_n part_n of_o christ_n presbytery_n as_o he_o call_v it_o but_o the_o n._n t._n no_o where_o call_v they_o so_o nor_o do_v it_o appear_v that_o ever_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n and_o seventy_o disciple_n act_v together_o as_o one_o presbytery_n ignatius_n say_v he_o style_v they_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 25._o p._n 25._o the_o presbytery_n of_o the_o church_n ignatius_n call_v the_o apostle_n so_o not_o the_o apostle_n and_o seventy_o disciple_n as_o he_o insinuate_v in_o a_o general_a sense_n as_o they_o call_v themselves_o presbyter_n but_o the_o new-testament_n sufficient_o distinguish_v between_o apostle_n and_o presbyter_n proper_o so_o call_v but_o no_o where_o distinguish_v between_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n so_o likewise_o if_o we_o may_v believe_v the_o rector_n every_o apostle_n in_o his_o plantation_n ibid._n ibid._n have_v his_o presbytery_n in_o the_o city_n where_o he_o have_v settle_v church_n as_o be_v clear_a from_o act_n 15._o but_o that_o apostle_n be_v head_n of_o they_o 1._o doubtless_o every_o constitute_v church_n have_v a_o presbytery_n which_o be_v the_o church_n presbytery_n and_o not_o the_o apostle_n as_o he_o call_v it_o his_o presbytery_n be_v a_o form_n of_o expression_n not_o know_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n paul_n do_v not_o call_v the_o presbytery_n of_o any_o church_n his_o presbytery_n 2._o what_o if_o two_o apostle_n settle_v a_o church_n in_o conjunction_n as_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n do_v many_o who_o then_o be_v the_o presbytery_n be_v it_o divide_v between_o both_o or_o be_v they_o joint_a head_n of_o the_o presbytery_n or_o do_v one_o resign_v his_o right_n in_o they_o to_o another_o perhaps_o mr._n g._n can_v tell_v we_o how_o the_o point_n be_v settle_v without_o the_o danger_n of_o make_v two_o apostolical_a head_n of_o the_o presbytery_n of_o a_o church_n for_o that_o will_v be_v a_o bad_a precedent_n and_o may_v warrant_v the_o set_n up_o of_o two_o bishop_n in_o one_o church_n 3._o the_o elder_n of_o jerusalem_n have_v not_o one_o
the_o apostle_n must_v be_v presume_v to_o have_v do_v the_o same_o 1._o if_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o appoint_v one_o presbyter_n as_o supreme_a to_o preside_v over_o the_o rest_n and_o to_o succeed_v he_o in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o presbyter_n the_o government_n by_o his_o own_o confession_n must_v lodge_v in_o the_o presbyter_n of_o the_o church_n in_o parity_n 2._o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v not_o ordinary_a presbyter_n but_o extraordinary_a officer_n that_o be_v evangelist_n and_o as_o such_o be_v superior_a to_o presbyter_n as_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n be_v there_o be_v not_o the_o least_o hint_n in_o the_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n that_o they_o be_v ordain_v to_o be_v the_o apostle_n successor_n in_o ephesus_n and_o crete_n 3._o the_o apostle_n do_v commit_v the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n in_o his_o absence_n to_o the_o presbytery_n in_o a_o parity_n act_n 20.17_o 18._o and_o that_o when_o he_o be_v take_v his_o last_o leave_n of_o they_o without_o thought_n of_o see_v they_o any_o more_o v._o 25._o this_o be_v the_o proper_a season_n for_o he_o to_o provide_v a_o sirgle_n person_n to_o succeed_v he_o in_o the_o presidency_n over_o the_o presbyter_n of_o ephesus_n have_v such_o a_o presidency_n be_v of_o necessary_a and_o perpetual_a continuance_n in_o the_o church_n it_o be_v but_o rational_a to_o affirm_v that_o when_o the_o apostle_n take_v their_o final_a leave_n of_o any_o church_n than_o be_v the_o proper_a time_n to_o take_v care_n of_o its_o future_a government_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v imagine_v that_o the_o holy_a apostle_n will_v be_v want_v in_o their_o duty_n towards_o the_o church_n in_o such_o a_o conjuncture_n as_o this_o they_o be_v faithful_a steward_n of_o god_n house_n and_o give_v the_o necessary_a rule_n for_o its_o future_a government_n and_o conservation_n according_o the_o apostle_n be_v very_o particular_a and_o express_a in_o give_v direction_n about_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n after_o his_o departure_n he_o send_v for_o the_o elder_n of_o ephesus_n preach_v his_o farewell_n sermon_n to_o they_o a_v 20.17_o 36._o in_o all_o which_o there_o be_v not_o one_o word_n of_o set_v a_o single_a person_n over_o they_o but_o the_o whole_a government_n of_o the_o church_n be_v commit_v to_o they_o in_o a_o state_n of_o parity_n and_o lest_o any_o shall_v think_v this_o be_v a_o prudential_a constitution_n he_o tell_v they_o this_o power_n be_v consign_v to_o they_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o make_v they_o bishop_n to_o feed_v or_o rule_n the_o church_n of_o god_n v._o 28._o the_o elder_n to_o who_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n be_v thus_o commit_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n take_v their_o solemn_a and_o final_a leave_n of_o paul_n with_o many_o tear_n sorrow_v most_o of_o all_o for_o the_o word_n which_o he_o speak_v that_o they_o shall_v see_v his_o face_n no_o more_o ver_fw-la 38._o whether_o he_o do_v return_v again_o be_v not_o material_a at_o all_o it_o be_v evident_a he_o think_v he_o shall_v not_o and_o the_o elder_n of_o ephesus_n think_v so_o also_o there_o be_v no_o one_o presbytery_n of_o which_o the_o apostle_n take_v such_o a_o solemn_a leave_n as_o he_o do_v of_o this_o and_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n if_o it_o have_v be_v the_o mind_n of_o god_n that_o a_o single_a person_n shall_v be_v set_v over_o they_o but_o the_o apostle_n will_v have_v mention_v it_o at_o this_o time_n he_o tell_v they_o in_o his_o charge_n to_o they_o that_o he_o shun_v not_o to_o declare_v to_o they_o the_o whole_a counsel_n of_o god_n act_v 20.27_o and_o immediate_o add_v v._o 28._o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n make_v they_o bishop_n of_o that_o flock_n this_o therefore_o be_v part_n of_o the_o council_n of_o god_n that_o the_o church_n be_v govern_v by_o the_o elder_n in_o parity_n if_o the_o superiority_n of_o bishop_n have_v be_v any_o part_n of_o the_o council_n of_o god_n the_o apostle_n will_v not_o have_v withhold_v it_o from_o the_o presbyter_n of_o ephesus_n at_o this_o time_n they_o that_o affirm_v that_o the_o government_n of_o this_o church_n be_v afterward_o change_v must_v bring_v as_o clear_a proof_n for_o it_o as_o we_o do_v for_o this_o establishment_n it_o be_v very_o plain_a and_o incontestable_a that_o the_o apostle_n leave_v the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n in_o the_o presbyter_n of_o that_o church_n when_o he_o take_v his_o final_a leave_n of_o they_o and_o be_v it_o as_o plain_a that_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n upon_o which_o his_o episcopacy_n be_v found_v be_v write_v after_o this_o settlement_n of_o a_o govern_v presbytery_n which_o most_o ancient_a and_o modern_a chronologer_n except_o bishop_n pearson_n and_o two_o or_o three_o other_o affirm_v to_o be_v write_v before_o it_o be_v very_o evident_a that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n appoint_v the_o presbyter_n of_o ephesus_n the_o sole_a bishop_n of_o the_o church_n when_o paul_n bid_v they_o a_o final_a farewell_o and_o be_v it_o as_o evident_a that_o a_o evangelist_n as_o timothy_n be_v may_v be_v degrade_v from_o a_o extraordinary_a unfixed_a officer_n to_o a_o ordinary_a fix_a pastor_n in_o this_o establishment_n of_o presbytery_n without_o a_o superior_a bishop_n it_o be_v observable_a that_o 1._o it_o be_v a_o apostolical_a divine_a establishment_n the_o apostle_n be_v guide_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o his_o determination_n v._o 28._o 2._o it_o be_v the_o last_o establishment_n which_o he_o intend_v to_o make_v in_o that_o church_n for_o he_o have_v no_o thought_n of_o see_v they_o again_o 3._o it_o be_v intend_v for_o a_o perpetual_a establishment_n not_o only_o in_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n but_o in_o all_o other_o church_n mr._n g._n allow_v the_o government_n of_o this_o church_n to_o be_v a_o platform_n for_o other_o church_n p._n 45._o that_o it_o be_v perpetual_a appear_v 1._o because_o the_o apostle_n give_v they_o his_o last_o thought_n which_o be_v the_o same_o with_o his_o die_a thought_n for_o he_o positive_o tell_v they_o he_o shall_v see_v their_o face_n no_o more_o 2._o here_o be_v not_o one_o circumstance_n in_o the_o whole_a context_n that_o make_v for_o a_o temporary_a establishment_n if_o any_o say_v it_o be_v temporary_a he_o ought_v to_o prove_v it_o we_o may_v with_o much_o better_a reason_n affirm_v that_o the_o appoint_v of_o timothy_n a_o evangelist_n to_o settle_v some_o thing_n in_o ephesus_n in_o paul_n absence_n be_v temporary_a 3._o paul_n do_v not_o give_v the_o least_o hint_n in_o his_o whole_a discourse_n with_o the_o ephesian_a elder_n of_o any_o bishop_n he_o have_v set_v over_o they_o or_o that_o he_o intend_v to_o set_v one_o hereafter_o it_o be_v certain_a paul_n must_v needs_o know_v what_o sort_n of_o government_n god_n will_v have_v settle_v in_o his_o church_n after_o his_o departure_n we_o can_v imagine_v that_o he_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o pattern_n of_o god_n house_n the_o extraordinary_a gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v not_o give_v they_o in_o vain_a it_o be_v to_o lead_v they_o into_o all_o truth_n now_o if_o the_o apostle_n know_v of_o this_o pretend_a future_a establishment_n of_o episcopacy_n how_o come_v he_o not_o to_o acquaint_v the_o presbyter_n with_o it_o he_o shall_v have_v tell_v they_o how_o they_o be_v to_o govern_v the_o church_n in_o subordination_n to_o their_o bishop_n present_a or_o future_a but_o not_o a_o word_n of_o all_o this_o in_o his_o whole_a discourse_n a_o certain_a evidence_n that_o it_o be_v the_o apostle_n mind_n and_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o the_o presbyter_n shall_v govern_v the_o church_n in_o common_a timothy_n be_v now_o present_a or_o not_o far_o off_o act_v 20.4_o 6._o why_o have_v not_o the_o apostle_n recommend_v the_o presbyter_n to_o his_o charge_n they_o want_v a_o present_a bishop_n according_a to_o mr._n g's_o hypothesis_n for_o the_o apostle_n be_v take_v his_o final_a leave_n of_o they_o what_o shall_v hinder_v his_o be_v set_v over_o they_o his_o year_n he_o be_v but_o young_a when_o the_o first_o epistle_n be_v write_v which_o suppose_v he_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n 1_o tim._n 4.12_o there_o be_v prophecy_n concern_v he_o 1_o tim._n 1.18_o he_o have_v be_v ordain_v by_o prophecy_n 1_o tim._n 4.14_o and_o be_v there_o no_o prophecy_n of_o his_o be_v future_a bishop_n of_o ephesus_n if_o there_o be_v how_o come_v the_o apostle_n to_o suppress_v it_o in_o this_o necessary_a juncture_n when_o it_o so_o great_o concern_v the_o ephesian_a elder_n to_o know_v how_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n be_v to_o be_v govern_v after_o the_o apostle_n departure_n will_v not_o the_o elder_n of_o ephesus_n acquiesce_v in_o this_o determination_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o his_o last_o and_o unalterable_a settlement_n
his_o ipse_fw-la dixit_fw-la for_o proof_n and_o then_o all_o your_o doubt_n will_v vanish_v he_o confess_v that_o the_o apostle_n may_v just_o admonish_v and_o commend_v timothy_n 49._o p._n 49._o the_o scope_n of_o his_o former_a chapter_n be_v to_o prove_v the_o presbyter●_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o apostle_n and_o therefore_o be_v not_o supreme_a governor_n now_o he_o own_v timothy_n to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o apostle_n so_o that_o his_o argument_n that_o the_o presbyter_n have_v no_o power_n of_o government_n because_o subject_a to_o the_o apostle_n be_v throw_v out_o of_o door_n by_o himself_o have_v he_o be_v so_o kind_a as_o to_o insert_v this_o concession_n in_o its_o proper_a place_n he_o will_v have_v spare_v we_o the_o trouble_n of_o several_a remark_n upon_o the_o former_a chapter_n he_o pick_v out_o of_o paul_n be_v epistle_n to_o timothy_n the_o particular_a rule_n and_o order_n 50._o p._n 49_o 50._o which_o be_v prescribe_v unto_o he_o for_o the_o discharge_n of_o his_o episcopal_a office_n the_o several_a power_n commit_v to_o timothy_n in_o this_o epistle_n he_o may_v execute_v as_o he_o be_v a_o evangelist_n 2_o tim._n 4_o 5._o and_o assistant_n of_o paul_n in_o his_o apostolical_a function_n and_o as_o his_o delegate_n to_o order_n and_o regulate_v the_o church_n it_o be_v timothy_n be_v part_n to_o see_v to_o the_o qualification_n of_o those_o who_o be_v to_o be_v ordain_v at_o ephesus_n 50._o p._n 50._o if_o this_o be_v the_o proper_a work_n of_o a_o bishop_n how_o come_v our_o bishop_n to_o depute_v this_o work_n to_o one_o of_o their_o presbyter_n at_o his_o death_n he_o leave_v a_o successor_n with_o the_o same_o power_n 55._o p._n 55._o timothy_n be_v a_o evangelist_n a_o extraordinary_a officer_n eph._n 4.5_o 11._o do_v he_o leave_v successor_n with_o the_o same_o extraordinary_a power_n if_o evangelist_n one_o species_n of_o extraordinary_a officer_n have_v successor_n why_o shall_v not_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n also_o have_v successor_n assign_v they_o apostle_n prophet_n and_o evangelist_n be_v alike_o extraordinary_a and_o superior_a to_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n the_o ordinary_a officer_n of_o christ_n church_n no_o reason_n can_v be_v give_v why_o one_o sort_n of_o extraordinary_a officer_n shall_v be_v continue_v more_o than_o the_o rest_n which_o be_v confess_o cease_v but_o let_v we_o hear_v his_o proof_n 1._o it_o be_v no_o way_n likely_a but_o that_o timothy_n be_v express_o impower_v by_o st._n paul_n to_o provide_v for_o the_o future_a government_n of_o the_o church_n and_o perhaps_o his_o commission_n be_v in_o that_o 2_o tim._n 2.2_o or_o if_o not_o yet_o he_o will_v of_o his_o own_o accord_n settle_v it_o upon_o the_o same_o bottom_n that_o himself_o have_v receive_v it_o from_o the_o apostle_n something_o he_o will_v say_v but_o know_v not_o what_o i_o expect_v a_o clear_a proof_n but_o we_o be_v put_v off_o with_o a_o perhaps_o it_o be_v so_o or_o so_o or_o so_o one_o way_n or_o other_o it_o must_v be_v it_o be_v likely_a he_o be_v impower_v to_o provide_v for_o the_o future_a government_n of_o the_o church_n paul_n provide_v for_o it_o in_o act_n 20.28_o his_o commission_n in_o 1_o tim._n 22.11_o be_v to_o commit_v the_o thing_n that_o he_o have_v hear_v of_o paul_n to_o faithful_a man_n which_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o teach_v other_o also_o be_v this_o a_o commission_n to_o ordain_v bishop_n be_v all_o teacher_n bishop_n the_o bishop_n in_o ephesus_n act_v 20.28_o be_v but_o mere_a teacher_n with_o he_o and_o now_o the_o teacher_n in_o ephesus_n be_v ordain_v bishop_n the_o bishop_n which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n make_v in_o ephesus_n he_o degrade_v into_o ordinary_a teacher_n who_o have_v no_o ordain_v power_n and_o now_o when_o it_o serve_v his_o turn_n he_o advance_v the_o teacher_n ordain_v by_o timothy_n into_o the_o order_n of_o superior_a bishop_n but_o timothy_n will_v of_o his_o own_o accord_n settle_v the_o government_n as_o he_o receive_v it_o he_o receive_v the_o power_n of_o a_o evangelist_n which_o be_v temporary_a as_o be_v that_o of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n 2._o timothy_n leave_v a_o successor_n 56._o p._n 56._o because_o christ_n direct_v his_o message_n to_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o singular_a number_n if_o that_o church_n have_v be_v govern_v by_o a_o presbytery_n the_o message_n must_v have_v be_v express_v in_o the_o plural_a 1._o angel_n be_v a_o metaphorical_a term_n and_o be_v general_o apply_v to_o the_o heavenly_a spirit_n which_o be_v minister_a spirit_n to_o the_o heir_n of_o salvation_n heb._n 1.14_o so_o that_o this_o title_n denote_v a_o ministry_n rather_o than_o degree_n of_o superiority_n 2._o angel_n be_v often_o take_v collective_o and_o seldom_o personal_o in_o the_o mysterious_a book_n of_o the_o revelation_n rev._n 9.11_o &_o 14.6_o 8_o 9_o and_o so_o be_v star_n use_v which_o be_v the_o same_o with_o angel_n rev._n 1.20_o &_o 12.1_o &_o 8.10_o &_o 9.1_o they_o be_v mystical_a term_n and_o no_o clear_a consequence_n can_v be_v deduce_v from_o they_o austin_n in_o his_o disputation_n with_o the_o donatist_n except_v against_o mystical_a figurative_a scripture_n and_o require_v some_o clear_a text_n that_o carry_v their_o own_o evidence_n with_o they_o xix_o they_o haec_fw-la mystica_fw-la sunt_fw-la opertasunt_fw-la figurata_fw-la sunt_fw-la aliquid_fw-la manifestum_fw-la quod_fw-la interpret_v non_fw-la egeat_fw-la stagitamus_fw-la de_fw-fr unit_fw-la eccl._n cap._n xix_o the_o epistle_n be_v dedicate_v to_o all_o the_o church_n as_o well_o as_o to_o the_o angel_n and_o by_o the_o same_o reason_n must_v be_v direct_v to_o all_o the_o minister_n as_o well_o as_o to_o one_o can_v it_o be_v imagine_v that_o the_o spirit_n shall_v speak_v to_o all_o the_o church_n and_o not_o to_o all_o the_o minister_n 3._o there_o be_v several_a bishop_n in_o ephesus_n act_v 20.28_o and_o doubtless_o all_o of_o they_o be_v concern_v in_o christ_n message_n though_o it_o may_v be_v direct_v to_o one_o as_o precedent_n or_o moderator_n for_o order_n sake_n but_o mr._n g._n will_v never_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v that_o one_o angel_n have_v jurisdiction_n over_o the_o rest_n 4._o if_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n of_o certainty_n in_o the_o celestial_a hierarchy_n which_o be_v describe_v by_o the_o supposititious_a dionysius_n the_o order_n of_o angel_n strict_o call_v so_o be_v the_o low_a of_o all_o the_o rest_n 9_o rest_n extremo_fw-la loco_fw-la inter_fw-la coelestes_fw-la essentias_fw-la angelicam_fw-la proprietam_fw-la obtinent_fw-la de_fw-fr coel._n hierar_fw-it cap._n 9_o how_o come_v that_o to_o be_v the_o high_a order_n among_o ecclesiastical_a angel_n which_o be_v the_o low_a among_o celestial_a argel_n he_o add_v the_o reason_n why_o it_o be_v say_v angel_n in_o the_o singular_a number_n because_o say_v he_o there_o be_v a_o opinion_n current_a in_o those_o day_n that_o every_o province_n have_v his_o peculiar_a guardian_n angel_n deut._n 32.8_o in_o the_o lxx_o dan._n 12.1_o &_o 10.12_o 13._o 1._o the_o current_a opinion_n of_o a_o provincial_a guardian_n angel_n be_v very_o doubtful_a at_o the_o best_a and_o without_o foundation_n in_o the_o scripture_n he_o quote_v 2._o the_o seventy_o interpreter_n render_v deut._n 32.8_o he_o set_v the_o bound_n of_o the_o people_n accordirg_n to_o the_o number_n of_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n whereas_o according_a to_o the_o hebrew_n it_o shall_v be_v according_a to_o the_o number_n of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n they_o seem_v to_o allude_v to_o the_o jewish_a fabulous_a tradition_n concern_v the_o seventy_o angel_n set_v over_o the_o seventy_o nation_n of_o the_o world_n 402._o world_n light_n vol._n ii_o p._n 402._o 3._o according_a to_o this_o allusion_n the_o rector_n will_v have_v the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o constitute_v but_o one_o bishop_n for_o one_o province_n or_o nation_n and_o but_o seventy_o for_o all_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o world_n but_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o be_v no_o friend_n to_o fabulous_a tradition_n mention_n seven_o angel_n in_o one_o province_n namely_o the_o pronconsular_a asia_n and_o there_o be_v as_o many_o in_o every_o church_n as_o there_o be_v presbyter_n therein_o 4._o be_v it_o not_o more_o probable_a that_o the_o spirit_n allude_v to_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o argel_n of_o the_o church_n as_o the_o jew_n call_v the_o public_a minister_n of_o every_o synagogue_n 133._o synagogue_n light_n vol._n ii_o p._n 133._o in_o conformity_n to_o the_o language_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n job_n 33.23_o hag._n 1.13_o mal._n 21.7_o he_o be_v the_o messenger_n of_o the_o lord_n of_o host_n the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d messenger_n or_o angel_n lxx_o angel_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d mal._n 2.7_o in_o lxx_o be_v take_v collective_o for_o all_o teach_v priest_n mal._n 3.1_o 8._o &_o 2.7_o if_o angel_n be_v take_v collective_o by_o malachi_n
dalmatia_n 2_o tim._n 4.10_o and_o we_o hear_v no_o more_o of_o he_o 3._o he_o think_v titus_n 1.5_o that_o thou_o may_v ordain_v elder_n not_o right_o translate_v it_o shall_v be_v that_o thou_o may_v appoint_v and_o settle_v elder_n in_o every_o city_n this_o presuppose_n that_o titus_n have_v the_o power_n of_o ordain_v also_o 1._o here_o he_o give_v up_o one_o of_o titus_n main_a power_n for_o which_o they_o feign_v he_o a_o bishop_n to_o wit_n his_o ordain_v of_o elder_n this_o he_o say_v be_v not_o the_o meaning_n of_o titus_n 1.5_o if_o this_o text_n do_v not_o prove_v his_o ordain_v power_n no_o one_o in_o that_o epistle_n do_v 2._o he_o fancy_v that_o assign_v unto_o presbyter_n their_o power_n and_o special_a place_n be_v the_o work_n of_o titus_n in_o crete_n and_o that_o this_o be_v after_o ordination_n do_v not_o titus_n ordain_v elder_n in_o every_o city_n or_o particular_a church_n as_o he_o himself_o explain_v it_o act_n 14.23_o and_o be_v they_o not_o choose_v by_o the_o multitude_n before_o ordination_n as_o he_o also_o confess_v in_o the_o case_n of_o his_o deacon-presbyter_n act_n 6._o he_o will_v do_v well_o to_o tell_v we_o what_o new_a power_n be_v assign_v unto_o the_o presbyter_n by_o titus_n after_o ordination_n perhaps_o he_o dream_v that_o the_o elder_n need_v a_o licence_n from_o their_o bishop_n to_o empower_v they_o to_o preach_v after_o ordination_n as_o the_o canon_n require_v 36._o require_v can._n 36._o paul_n say_v he_o entrust_v he_o with_o the_o charge_n of_o see_v unto_o the_o qualification_n of_o elder_n 65._o p._n 65._o v._o 6_o 7_o 8_o 9_o the_o same_o though_o more_o compendious_a than_o those_o in_o 1_o tim._n 3._o 1._o all_o that_o he_o may_v do_v as_o a_o evangelist_n or_o the_o apostle_n delegate_n as_o the_o bishop_n chaplain_n or_o archdeacon_n examine_v the_o candidate_n for_o the_o ministry_n with_o we_o 2._o he_o wise_o overlook_v the_o identity_n of_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n which_o be_v assert_v in_o both_o the_o place_n he_o quote_v titus_n 1.5_o 6_o 7_o 8._o ordain_v elder_n if_o any_o be_v blameless_a for_o a_o bishop_n must_v be_v blameless_a the_o reason_n be_v incogent_n if_o elder_a and_o bishop_n be_v not_o the_o same_o the_o qualification_n of_o elder_n here_o be_v the_o same_o with_o those_o of_o a_o bishop_n in_o 1_o tim._n 3._o as_o he_o confess_v bishop_n and_o presbyter_n be_v the_o same_o not_o only_o at_o first_o but_o even_o at_o this_o time_n when_o these_o epistle_n be_v write_v to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n which_o make_v it_o evident_a they_o be_v evangelist_n superior_a to_o presbyter_n eph._n 4.11_o and_o not_o bishop_n in_o a_o proper_a sense_n who_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o with_o presbyter_n he_o will_v not_o be_v able_a to_o give_v one_o instance_n in_o all_o the_o new_a testament_n of_o any_o one_o ordinary_a minister_n or_o elder_n that_o be_v make_v superior_a to_o his_o brethren_n of_o the_o same_o order_n with_o he_o nor_o of_o any_o extraordinary_a officer_n that_o be_v make_v superior_a to_o other_o of_o the_o same_o kind_n one_o apostle_n be_v not_o make_v superior_a to_o another_o apostle_n nor_o one_o prophet_n to_o another_o prophet_n nor_o one_o evangelist_n to_o another_o evangelist_n though_o the_o apostle_n be_v above_o the_o prophet_n and_o the_o prophet_n above_o the_o evangelist_n and_o all_o the_o three_o be_v superior_a to_o the_o presbyter_n but_o no_o one_o presbyter_n be_v make_v superior_a in_o degree_n much_o less_o a_o ruler_n over_o another_o presbyter_n the_o apostle_n empower_n he_o say_v he_o cap._n 1.11_o to_o stop_v the_o mouth_n or_o silence_n false_a teacher_n to_o rebuke_v they_o sharp_o v._o 13._o that_o be_v v._o 10._o the_o unruly_a or_o nonconformist_n etc._n etc._n 1._o the_o apostle_n explain_v his_o mean_v about_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o false_a teacher_n in_o v._o 9_o that_o he_o may_v be_v able_a by_o sound_a doctrine_n both_o to_o exhort_v and_o convince_v gainsayer_n he_o speak_v of_o the_o presbyter_n ordain_v by_o titus_n that_o they_o must_v be_v able_a to_o convince_v gainsayer_n and_o so_o to_o stop_v their_o mouth_n even_o private_a person_n be_v exhort_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o stop_v the_o mouth_n or_o put_v to_o silence_v the_o ignorance_n of_o foolish_a man_n 1_o pet._n 2.15_o 2._o but_o suppose_v it_o be_v mean_v of_o a_o authoritative_a silence_v of_o such_o it_o be_v no_o more_o than_o what_o titus_n may_v do_v as_o a_o evangelist_n and_o the_o apostle_n delegate_n 3._o the_o rector_n show_v his_o good_a will_n to_o have_v the_o nonconformist_n silence_v but_o it_o be_v well_o that_o curse_a cow_n have_v short_a horn_n 4._o the_o nonconformist_n or_o varuly_a person_n the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o be_v a_o sort_n of_o judaize_v christian_n that_o retain_v the_o legal_a ceremony_n and_o the_o commandment_n of_o man_n it_o be_v 1.10_o 13._o they_o be_v not_o content_a with_o the_o simplicity_n and_o plainness_n of_o gospel-institution_n but_o will_v superadd_a their_o own_o invention_n and_o impose_v they_o upon_o other_o these_o be_v the_o nonconformist_n that_o will_v not_o conform_v to_o the_o simplicity_n of_o the_o gospel_n nor_o leave_v other_o in_o the_o quiet_a possession_n of_o gospel-priviledge_n unless_o they_o submit_v to_o their_o imposition_n act_n 15.2_o gal._n 4.9_o 10._o and_o 5.1_o 2_o col_n 2.20_o 23._o grotius_n give_v another_o character_n by_o which_o these_o nonconformist_n may_v be_v know_v he_o say_v that_o the_o apostle_n point_v at_o those_o who_o teach_v that_o all_o israelite_n have_v a_o part_n in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v 1.10_o come_v grot._n in_o tit._n 1.10_o not_o unlike_o some_o people_n who_o affirm_v all_o to_o be_v save_v dead_a save_v vid._n com._n prayer_n burial_n dead_a that_o have_v the_o happiness_n to_o die_v in_o their_o communion_n and_o do_v not_o lay_v violent_a hand_n upon_o themselves_o we_o be_v oblige_v to_o the_o rector_n for_o help_v we_o to_o a_o right_a notion_n of_o nonconformity_n there_o be_v two_o sort_n of_o nonconformist_n some_o be_v so_o call_v because_o they_o do_v not_o conform_v to_o unscriptural_a imposition_n these_o the_o text_n speak_v nothing_o of_o other_o as_o the_o rector_n well_o observe_v may_v be_v so_o call_v because_o they_o do_v not_o conform_v to_o the_o simplicity_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o impose_v humane_a invention_n as_o term_n of_o communion_n the_o latter_a of_o these_o two_o be_v the_o culpable_a nonconformist_n i_o believe_v mr._n g._n will_v not_o be_v for_o silence_v these_o lest_o be_v be_v condemn_v out_o of_o his_o own_o mouth_n paul_n instruct_v he_o to_o reject_v a_o heretic_n 66._o p._n 66._o tit._n 3.10_o that_o he_o may_v do_v as_o a_o evangelist_n what_o he_o transcribe_v out_o of_o ignatius_n from_o p._n 67._o to_o p._n 73._o do_v not_o concern_v crete_n and_o we_o have_v already_o consider_v ignatius_n bis_fw-la bishop_n here_o be_v not_o one_o direction_n or_o command_n give_v to_o the_o presbytery_n 76._o p._n 76._o nor_o any_o share_n in_o the_o government_n communicate_v to_o they_o in_o these_o epistle_n say_v our_o author_n 1._o the_o epistle_n be_v direct_v to_o evangelist_n who_o be_v superior_a to_o presbyter_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v fit_v the_o exhortation_n shall_v be_v immediate_o direct_v to_o they_o 2._o the_o direction_n concern_v the_o presbyter_n also_o as_o the_o ordinary_a perpetual_a governor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o doubtless_o be_v intend_v for_o the_o use_n of_o the_o church_n unto_o the_o end_n of_o time_n 1_o tim._n 4._o 2_o tim._n 3._o the_o presbyter_n be_v concern_v i_o hope_v in_o the_o several_a direction_n to_o purity_n patience_n constancy_n faithfulness_n in_o dispense_n the_o word_n etc._n etc._n 1_o tim_n 6.11_o 12._o 2_o tim._n 2.3_o 4._o and_o 4.1_o 2_o 3._o 3._o it_o be_v a_o very_a gross_a mistake_n that_o the_o presbytery_n have_v no_o share_n in_o the_o government_n communicate_v to_o they_o in_o these_o epistle_n paul_n ordain_v bishop_n there_o who_o among_o other_o qualification_n must_v be_v such_o as_o rule_v well_o their_o own_o house_n that_o they_o may_v take_v care_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n 1_o tim._n 3.4_o 5._o and_o in_o 1_o tim._n 5.17_o he_o mention_n elder_n that_o rule_v well_o and_o mere_a worthy_a of_o double_a honour_n he_o contradict_v himself_o and_o say_v that_o the_o presbyter_n have_v some_o interest_n in_o the_o government_n though_o their_o power_n be_v subordinate_a as_o appear_v from_o the_o council_n at_o jerusalem_n 77._o p._n 77._o act_v 15._o even_o with_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o doubtless_o then_o and_o much_o more_o with_o timothy_n and_o titus_n they_o have_v no_o share_n in_o the_o government_n and_o yet_o they_o have_v some_o interest_n in_o it_o himself_o can_v best_o reconcile_v these_o inconsistent_a proposition_n they_o be_v
subordinate_a to_o the_o apostle_n act_n 15._o and_o so_o be_v the_o evangelist_n but_o can_v he_o produce_v any_o ordinary_a presbyter_n that_o be_v subordinate_a to_o other_o of_o the_o same_o order_n ignatius_n say_v he_o allow_v they_o a_o great_a stroke_n in_o order_v the_o affair_n of_o their_o church_n 77._o p._n 77._o but_o still_o in_o subjection_n to_o their_o bishop_n without_o who_o they_o can_v do_v nothing_o it_o do_v not_o appear_v that_o ignatius_n his_o bishop_n can_v do_v any_o thing_n without_o his_o presbyter_n no_o more_o than_o they_o can_v without_o he_o and_o long_o after_o his_o time_n the_o bishop_n have_v no_o power_n to_o determine_v church-matter_n without_o his_o presbyter_n as_o appear_v by_o that_o canon_n in_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n let_v the_o bishop_n hear_v no_o man_n cause_n without_o the_o presence_n of_o his_o clergy_n otherwise_o his_o sentence_n shall_v be_v void_a unless_o it_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o presence_n of_o his_o clergy_n 13._o clergy_n council_n cath._n iu._n can._n 13._o cyprian_n do_v nothing_o without_o the_o council_n of_o his_o presbyter_n and_o without_o the_o consent_n of_o his_o people_n 6._o people_n statuerim_fw-la nil_fw-la sine_fw-la concilio_n vestro_fw-la &_o sine_fw-la consensu_fw-la plebis_fw-la meae_fw-la privatâ_fw-la sentemiâ_fw-la gerere_fw-la cypr._n ep._n 6._o to_o be_v sure_a than_o the_o people_n and_o their_o bishop_n ordinary_o meet_v in_o one_o place_n ignatius_n frequent_o exhort_v the_o people_n to_o do_v nothing_o without_o their_o bishop_n presbyter_n and_o deacon_n in_o conjunction_n the_o bishop_n and_o his_o presbyter_n make_v one_o consistory_n the_o bishop_n say_v he_o preside_v in_o the_o place_n of_o god_n and_o the_o presbyter_n in_o the_o place_n of_o the_o council_n of_o the_o apostle_n 33._o apostle_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d magn._n p._n 33._o and_o a●_n little_a after_o he_o mention_n the_o complex_n spiritual_a crown_n of_o the_o presbytery_n who_o sit_v round_o about_o he_o in_o the_o church_n 37._o church_n p._n 37._o again_o let_v all_o reverence_n the_o deacon_n as_o the_o command_n of_o jesus_n christ_n aid_v the_o bishop_n as_o jesus_n christ_n who_o be_v the_o son_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o presbyter_n as_o the_o council_n of_o god_n and_o the_o conjunction_n of_o the_o apostle_n 48._o apostle_n ad_fw-la tralles_n p._n 48._o by_o these_o and_o many_o other_o passage_n in_o ignatius_n his_o epistle_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n sit_v in_o council_n together_o and_o be_v only_o the_o guide_n of_o a_o parochial_a church_n in_o which_o the_o bishop_n do_v nothing_o without_o his_o presbyter_n nor_o they_o without_o he_o this_o agreement_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o his_o presbyter_n ignatius_n compare_v to_o the_o string_n of_o a_o harp_n and_o add_v that_o under_o their_o joint_n conduct_v the_o whole_a church_n make_v a_o chorus_n a_o sacred_a choir_n and_o by_o their_o consent_a unity_n make_v a_o divine_a melody_n 19_o melody_n ad_fw-la ephes_n p_o 19_o this_o be_v agreeable_a to_o what_o jerom_n affirm_v that_o the_o churth_n be_v ancient_o govern_v communi_fw-la concilio_n presbyterorum_fw-la by_o the_o common_a council_n of_o the_o presbyter_n tit._n presbyter_n hier._n in_o ep._n ad_fw-la tit._n who_o have_v a_o moderator_n or_o precedent_n for_o order_n sake_n but_o without_o any_o jurisdiction_n over_o the_o other_o presbyter_n this_o moderator_n at_o the_o first_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o choose_v but_o the_o honour_n be_v devolve_v in_o course_n upon_o the_o senior_a presbyter_n and_o when_o he_o die_v the_o next_o to_o he_o succeed_v this_o be_v express_o arffirm_v by_o hilarius_n the_o deacon_n 4._o deacon_n ut_fw-la recedente_fw-la uno_fw-la sequens_fw-la ei_fw-la succedederet_fw-la hil._n in_o eph._n 4._o but_o the_o senior_a presbyter_n prove_v sometime_o not_o so_o fit_a for_o the_o place_n as_o he_o add_v they_o change_v the_o succession_n by_o seniority_n into_o that_o by_o election_n the_o presbyter_n choose_v the_o fit_a person_n to_o be_v their_o moderator_n or_o precedent_n as_o be_v do_v in_o all_o the_o presbytery_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n this_o precedent_n have_v no_o new_a ordination_n have_v no_o power_n over_o his_o brethren_n and_o be_v but_o primus_fw-la sacerdos_n the_o first_o presbyter_n as_o hilary_n affirm_v see_v this_o quotation_n more_o at_o large_a in_o j._n oh_o plea_n p._n 136._o 1.3_o 136._o mutata_fw-la este_fw-la ratio_fw-la ut_fw-la non_fw-la ordo_fw-la sed_fw-la meritum_fw-la crearet_fw-la episcopum_fw-la etc._n etc._n in_o eph._n 4._o &_o in_o 1_o tim._n 1.3_o thus_o it_o be_v at_o alexandria_n as_o jerom_n observe_v ad_fw-la evagr._fw-la by_o all_o which_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o primitive_a bishop_n be_v not_o of_o the_o same_o species_n with_o our_o modern_a bishop_n and_o that_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n by_o the_o presbyter_n under_o their_o respective_a moderator_n be_v most_o agreeable_a to_o the_o primitive_a practice_n he_o think_v that_o he_o have_v sufficient_o prove_v that_o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v diocesan_n governor_n though_o not_o bishop_n in_o title_n 78._o title_n p._n 78._o i_o leave_v it_o to_o the_o impartial_a reader_n to_o consider_v of_o his_o proof_n and_o my_o answer_n as_o to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n i_o will_v add_v these_o few_o thing_n and_o so_o conclude_v this_o chapter_n 1._o it_o be_v certain_a there_o be_v a_o order_n of_o evangelist_n in_o the_o church_n ephes_n 4.11_o this_o all_o will_v acknowledge_v 2._o they_o be_v vnsix_v officer_n subordinate_a to_o the_o apostle_n and_o send_v by_o they_o to_o supply_v their_o absence_n in_o the_o church_n plant_v by_o they_o 1_o cor._n 3.6_o not_o as_o their_o state_v pastor_n for_o they_o have_v pastor_n and_o teacher_n resident_a with_o they_o but_o to_o guide_v the_o new_a pastor_n in_o faith_n worship_n and_o discipline_n during_o the_o present_a necessity_n until_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v write_v for_o a_o complete_a and_o infallible_a directory_n unto_o all_o church_n unto_o the_o end_n of_o time_n the_o apostle_n themselves_o can_v not_o be_v every_o where_o and_o the_o ordinary_a minister_n will_v be_v often_o at_o a_o loss_n without_o their_o direction_n therefore_o it_o be_v necessary_a they_o shall_v entrust_v some_o person_n as_o delegate_n to_o go_v in_o their_o name_n and_o with_o full_a instruction_n to_o the_o church_n to_o settle_v direct_v and_o establish_v they_o some_o of_o these_o evangelist_n general_o attend_v the_o apostle_n that_o they_o may_v be_v assistant_n to_o they_o sometime_o they_o send_v they_o to_o one_o church_n sometime_o to_o another_o to_o make_v a_o short_a or_o a_o long_a stay_n as_o the_o circumstance_n of_o their_o work_n require_v and_o then_o to_o return_v again_o to_o the_o apostle_n that_o send_v they_o thus_o timothy_n be_v send_v to_o corinth_n 1_o cor._n 16.10_o &_o 4.17_o we_o find_v he_o with_o paul_n again_o when_o he_o write_v the_o second_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n 1_o cor._n 1.1_o at_o berea_n he_o be_v with_o paul_n and_o abode_n there_o still_o with_o silas_n act_v 17.14_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o he_o do_v afterward_o at_o ephesus_n 1_o tim._n 1.3_o i_o beseech_v thou_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o abide_v still_o but_o no_o more_o as_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n than_o of_o berea_n and_o yet_o this_o be_v the_o great_a argument_n to_o prove_v he_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n that_o paul_n beseech_v he_o to_o abide_v there_o it_o be_v true_a he_o soon_o leave_v berea_n and_o follow_v paul_n to_o athens_n act_v 17.15_o who_o companion_n he_o be_v nor_o be_v he_o to_o stay_v at_o ephesus_n but_o until_o paul_n come_v to_o he_o 1_o tim._n 3.14_o &_o 4.13_o and_o in_o the_o second_o epistle_n which_o be_v write_v not_o long_o after_o the_o first_o the_o apostle_n call_v he_o away_o to_o rome_n and_o send_v lychicus_fw-la another_o evangelist_n to_o ephesus_n 2_o tim._n 4.9.12.21_o in_o 1_o thess_n 1.1_o we_o find_v he_o in_o athens_n whence_o he_o be_v send_v to_o thessalonica_n and_o thence_o return_v back_o to_o athens_n 1_o thes_n 3.1_o 2_o 6._o after_o this_o he_o remove_v with_o paul_n to_o corinth_n act_v 18.5_o thence_o he_o accompany_v paul_n to_o asia_n and_o ephesus_n act_v 19.1_o thence_o he_o be_v send_v to_o macedonia_n v._o 21_o 22._o but_o it_o be_v tedious_a to_o follow_v he_o in_o all_o his_o travel_n to_o so_o many_o distant_a place_n he_o be_v express_o call_v a_o evangelist_n 2_o tim._n 4.5_o and_o no_o one_o else_o be_v express_o so_o call_v but_o philip_n act_v 21.8_o titus_n be_v such_o another_o unfixed_a officer_n he_o be_v paul_n partner_n and_o fellow-helper_n 2_o cor._n 8.23_o and_o seem_v most_o employ_v in_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n 2_o cor._n 8.6.16_o &_o 7.6.13_o paul_n expect_v he_o at_o troas_n and_o not_o find_v he_o he_o have_v no_o rest_n
assertion_n be_v so_o crude_a and_o indigested_a 90._o p._n 90._o that_o it_o will_v require_v a_o just_a volume_n to_o make_v a_o collection_n of_o they_o he_o will_v make_v jerom_n say_v that_o it_o be_v decree_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n that_o one_o elect_v out_o of_o the_o presbyter_n who_o before_o govern_v the_o church_n in_o common_a be_v set_v over_o the_o rest_n 92._o p._n 91_o 92._o and_o that_o the_o decree_n be_v occasion_v by_o the_o corinthian_a schism_n here_o he_o abuse_v jerom_n and_o his_o reader_n for_o rerom_n no_o where_o say_v that_o the_o superiority_n of_o bishop_n be_v decree_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n jerom_n prove_v the_o identity_n of_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n not_o only_o from_o the_o epistle_n of_o paul_n but_o from_o the_o epistle_n of_o john_n the_o last_o of_o the_o apostle_n then_o he_o add_v quod_fw-la autem_fw-la postea_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o afterward_o one_o be_v choose_v and_o set_v over_o the_o rest_n as_o a_o remedy_n against_o schism_n jerom_n afterward_o must_v refer_v to_o the_o write_n of_o john_n epistle_n and_o so_o his_o meaning_n must_v be_v that_o after_o the_o apostle_n time_n this_o decree_n be_v make_v for_o he_o prove_v that_o presbyter_n s_o and_o bishop_n be_v the_o same_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n it_o be_v true_a he_o allude_v to_o the_o corinthian_a schism_n but_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o paul_n epistle_n to_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n contain_v no_o such_o remedy_n against_o schism_n as_o the_o superiority_n of_o bishop_n the_o corinthian_a schism_n be_v a_o most_o proper_a occasion_n for_o the_o institution_n of_o bishop_n if_o they_o be_v the_o apt_a remedy_n against_o schism_n but_o there_o be_v not_o a_o word_n of_o it_o in_o paul_n epistle_n to_o that_o church_n nor_o in_o clemens_n his_o epistle_n write_v long_o after_o what_o he_o say_v of_o ignatius_n agree_v with_o jerom_n in_o his_o account_n of_o bishop_n we_o have_v consider_v before_o the_o rector_n add_v that_o the_o apostle_n be_v as_o much_o concern_v at_o the_o corinthian_a schism_n as_o any_o other_o and_o that_o see_v division_n arise_v every_o where_n not_o only_o at_o corinth_n he_o weigh_v the_o matter_n well_o and_o ask_v counsel_n of_o god_n what_o he_o shall_v do_v and_o in_o the_o end_n conclude_v to_o set_v one_o presbyter_n over_o the_o rest_n to_o prevent_v the_o mischief_n of_o schism_n god_n so_o appoint_v it_o 1_o tim._n 1.18_o 1._o doubtless_o the_o apostle_n be_v concern_v at_o the_o corinthian_a schism_n as_o it_o be_v a_o dishonour_n to_o god_n and_o religion_n but_o not_o so_o much_o as_o it_o be_v against_o he_o and_o his_o authority_n which_o be_v the_o reason_n mr._n g._n assign_v he_o dare_v not_o say_v he_o appoint_v the_o remedy_n at_o this_o time_n he_o know_v that_o will_v be_v too_o gross_a but_o he_o cunning_o say_v in_o the_o end_n he_o conclude_v to_o set_v up_o one_o presbyter_n over_o the_o rest_n and_o refer_v we_o to_o 1_o tim._n 1.18_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n which_o mention_n the_o schism_n there_o be_v write_v about_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 55_o as_o dr._n lightfoot_n calculate_v 299._o calculate_v vol._n 1._o p._n 299._o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n be_v write_v about_o the_o year_n 69_o according_a to_o the_o rector_n hypothesis_n so_o that_o he_o make_v the_o apostle_n to_o provide_v the_o remedy_n about_o fourteen_o year_n after_o the_o disease_n be_v the_o apostle_n weigh_v the_o matter_n all_o those_o year_n or_o do_v he_o ask_v counsel_n of_o god_n and_o be_v not_o hear_v or_o do_v he_o neglect_v consult_v god_n till_o about_o the_o time_n he_o write_v to_o timothy_n 2._o have_v not_o paul_n weigh_v the_o matter_n of_o schism_n and_o consult_v god_n when_o he_o write_v to_o the_o corinthian_n doubtless_o he_o have_v if_o so_o we_o may_v expect_v a_o remedy_n against_o schism_n in_o those_o epistle_n but_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o the_o superiority_n of_o bishop_n in_o either_o of_o those_o epistle_n therefore_o that_o be_v not_o the_o remedy_n against_o schism_n 3._o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n be_v in_o danger_n of_o be_v break_v with_o schism_n when_o the_o apostle_n leave_v they_o without_o any_o thought_n of_o see_v they_o any_o more_o act_v 20.25_o what_o remedy_n do_v he_o provide_v not_o a_o superior_a bishop_n but_o he_o commit_v the_o flock_n in_o common_a to_o the_o presbyter_n act_n 20.17_o 28._o perhaps_o the_o rector_n will_v say_v he_o have_v not_o weigh_v the_o matter_n well_o at_o this_o time_n nor_o consult_v god_n in_o the_o case_n for_o our_o part_n we_o be_v satisfy_v he_o be_v infallible_o guide_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o all_o the_o rule_n of_o government_n he_o leave_v the_o church_n and_o as_o such_o we_o receive_v they_o he_o have_v several_a page_n to_o prove_v that_o paul_n be_v twice_o imprison_v at_o rome_n it_o be_v very_o probable_a he_o be_v eusebius_n say_v there_o be_v a_o tradition_n in_o his_o day_n of_o his_o be_v acquit_v the_o first_o time_n and_o that_o he_o go_v to_o several_a place_n preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o come_v to_o rome_n the_o second_o time_n he_o end_v his_o day_n with_o a_o bless_a martyrdom_n 21._o martyrdom_n eccles_n hist._n 11_o 21._o several_a ancient_a w●iters_n speak_v t●●●e_v same_o purpose_n but_o our_o author_n will_v prove_v it_o by_o sc●●pture_n nay_o he_o will_v demonstrate_v it_o beyond_o all_o far_a controversy_n this_o gentleman_n be_v singular_a at_o demonstration_n but_o let_v we_o see_v the_o strength_n of_o they_o 1._o paul_n leave_v trophimus_n at_o miletus_n sick_a 95._o p._n 95._o 2_o tim._n 4.20_o this_o be_v not_o when_o he_o meet_v the_o ephesian_a elder_n for_o than_o he_o go_v with_o he_o to_o jerusalem_n act_v 21.29_o it_o be_v most_o likely_a that_o he_o touch_v at_o miletus_n when_o he_o return_v from_o jerusalem_n in_o bond_n to_o rome_n it_o be_v evident_a he_o intend_v to_o sail_v by_o the_o coast_n of_o asia_n act_v 27.2_o and_o may_v touch_v at_o miletus_n which_o be_v a_o part_n of_o those_o asian_a coast_n though_o luke_n do_v not_o mention_v it_o or_o if_o miletum_n be_v a_o city_n of_o crete_n as_o heylin_n think_v he_o may_v leave_v he_o there_o when_o he_o touch_v upon_o those_o coast_n as_o he_o sail_v for_o rome_n act_v 27.7_o 8._o but_o if_o this_o miletum_n be_v malta_n ancient_o melita_n as_o grotius_n and_o beza_n affirm_v it_o be_v certain_a paul_n be_v there_o in_o his_o voyage_n from_o judea_n to_o rome_n act_v 28.1_o and_o may_v leave_v trophimus_n sick_a behind_o he_o as_o he_o say_v he_o do_v 2_o tim._n 4.20_o 2._o it_o be_v pretty_a plain_a 96._o p._n 96._o paul_n be_v once_o release_v from_o prison_n heb._n 13.24_o say_v the_o rector_n i_o think_v a_o demonstration_n which_o he_o promise_v we_o make_v thing_n very_o plain_a 3._o that_o which_o will_v put_v the_o matter_n out_o of_o all_o question_n be_v the_o vast_a difference_n between_o that_o his_o imprisonment_n in_o act_n 28._o and_o that_o in_o the_o second_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n he_o be_v in_o little_a or_o no_o danger_n but_o hold_v liberâ_fw-la custodià_fw-la in_o his_o first_o confinement_n but_o in_o his_o second_o he_o be_v a_o close_a prisoner_n in_o chain_n 2_o tim._n 1.16_o expect_a no_o deliverance_n 98._o p._n 98._o 2_o tim._n 4.6_o 7_o 8._o 1._o he_o be_v in_o some_o danger_n in_o his_o first_o imprisonment_n phil_n 2.23_o 2._o and_o bind_v with_o a_o chain_n act_v 28.20_o 3._o he_o mention_n his_o deliverance_n that_o he_o may_v preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o the_o gentile_n 2_o tim._n 4.17_o thus_o we_o have_v see_v the_o invalidity_n of_o his_o demonstration_n as_o he_o call_v they_o and_o how_o improbable_a his_o conjecture_n be_v which_o pass_v for_o demonstration_n with_o he_o that_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n be_v write_v after_o the_o congress_n at_o miletus_n and_o after_o paul_n imprisonment_n at_o rome_n for_o the_o far_a satisfaction_n of_o the_o impartial_a reader_n i_o will_v vindicate_v the_o ancient_a chronologer_n and_o prove_v that_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n be_v write_v before_o paul_n first_o imprisonment_n at_o rome_n and_o consequent_o before_o that_o meeting_n at_o miletus_n in_o which_o the_o apostle_n commit_v the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n to_o the_o presbyter_n thereof_o and_o not_o to_o timothy_n their_o pretend_a bishop_n and_o if_o he_o be_v no_o bishop_n when_o that_o epistle_n be_v write_v he_o be_v none_o at_o all_o if_o that_o epistle_n be_v write_v before_o the_o meeting_n at_o miletus_n all_o the_o argument_n from_o that_o epistle_n to_o prove_v he_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n be_v impertinent_a for_o the_o government_n of_o that_o church_n be_v commit_v to_o the_o presbyter_n in_o common_a and_o not_o to_o
upper_a house_n of_o bishop_n who_o have_v sometime_o a_o considerable_a influence_n in_o the_o election_n of_o the_o very_a clerk_n 3._o the_o rector_n may_v please_v himself_o with_o his_o power_n of_o make_v new_a law_n all_o the_o power_n we_o plead_v for_o be_v a_o liberty_n for_o parish-minister_n to_o execute_v the_o law_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o exclusion_n of_o the_o scandalous_a and_o the_o admission_n of_o such_o as_o be_v due_o qualify_v for_o gospel-ordinance_n the_o parish-minister_n or_o priest_n as_o he_o call_v they_o and_o yet_o be_v unreasonable_o angry_a with_o we_o for_o call_v they_o so_o have_v power_n to_o heprove_v and_o suspend_v for_o a_o time_n we_o have_v this_o before_o in_o the_o preface_n a_o private_a person_n may_v reprove_v they_o can_v suspend_v from_o the_o lord_n supper_n for_o a_o time_n i._n e._n till_o the_o next_o return_n of_o the_o carrier_n or_o about_o 14_o day_n and_o then_o they_o be_v oblige_v to_o deliver_v up_o all_o to_o the_o ordinary_a with_o who_o the_o offender_n often_o commutes_fw-la for_o his_o crime_n and_o return_v as_o impenitent_a as_o he_o go_v except_o he_o repent_v that_o he_o have_v part_v with_o so_o much_o money_n when_o he_o have_v make_v his_o peace_n with_o the_o ordinary_a or_o his_o commissary_n or_o chancellor_n the_o minister_n must_v admit_v he_o or_o be_v proceed_v against_o himself_o for_o disobey_v his_o superior_n be_v their_o any_o presilent_a for_o this_o in_o the_o gospel_n do_v christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n establish_v this_o sort_n of_o discipline_n mr._n g._n challenge_n j._n o._n to_o prove_v out_o of_o scripture_n that_o ever_o any_o ordinary_a presbyter_n do_v excommunicate_a 126._o p._n 126._o we_o have_v but_o few_o instance_n of_o excommunication_n in_o scripture_n but_o we_o have_v prove_v already_o that_o the_o corinthian_a presbyter_n and_o consequent_o all_o other_o have_v power_n to_o judge_n i._n e._n to_o decree_v excommunicate_v as_o the_o rector_n explain_v it_o those_o that_o be_v within_o 1_o cor._n 5.12_o see_v rom._n 16.17_o 2_o cor._n 2.6_o 2_o thess_n 3.6_o can_v the_o rector_n who_o so_o liberal_o demand_v scripture-proof_n give_v we_o any_o instance_n of_o presbyter_n suspend_v for_o a_o fortnight_n if_o he_o can_v find_v no_o proof_n in_o scripture_n that_o ordinary_a presbyter_n do_v suspend_v at_o all_o from_o the_o communion_n how_o dare_v they_o do_v it_o for_o a_o fortnight_n if_o he_o find_v by_o scripture_n they_o may_v suspend_v how_o dare_v he_o condemn_v our_o presbyter_n for_o suspending_a person_n until_o they_o see_v some_o evidence_n of_o their_o repentance_n but_o since_o he_o call_v for_o proof_n let_v he_o show_v we_o some_o proof_n out_o of_o scripture_n for_o the_o power_n of_o lay-chancellor_n to_o excommunicate_v or_o some_o instance_n of_o commute_v penance_n for_o a_o sum_n of_o money_n i_o have_v read_v in_o scripture_n of_o the_o priest_n eat_v up_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o people_n and_o set_v their_o heart_n on_o their_o iniquity_n hosh_n 4_o 8._o the_o covetous_a priest_n than_o get_v a_o small_a share_n out_o of_o the_o sacrifice_n occasion_v by_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o people_n jev_n 6.26_o &_o 10.17_o but_o our_o commuter_n engross_v the_o whole_a offer_v to_o themselves_o it_o be_v odd_a to_o hear_v a_o man_n call_v for_o scripture-proof_n who_o can_v pretend_v to_o any_o scripture-proof_n for_o abundance_n of_o thing_n which_o they_o practise_v and_o impose_v as_o condition_n of_o communion_n on_o minister_n and_o people_n tliis_fw-la gentleman_n have_v a_o measure_n and_o a_o measure_n that_o be_v a_o double_a measure_n one_o for_o himself_o and_o brethren_n and_o another_o for_o the_o dissenter_n be_v he_o willing_a to_o be_v determine_v by_o the_o scripture_n as_o he_o pretend_v our_o controversy_n will_v be_v soon_o at_o a_o end_n he_o ignorant_o affirm_v ibid._n ibid._n that_o the_o presbyterian_a bishop_n as_o he_o call_v they_o be_v at_o best_a but_o the_o executioner_n of_o the_o lay-elders_a will._n i_o know_v but_o very_o few_o of_o the_o congregation_n call_v presbyterian_a that_o have_v any_o rule_v elder_n at_o all_o and_o those_o that_o have_v receive_v they_o only_o as_o assistant_n to_o the_o minister_n and_o not_o as_o ruler_n superior_a to_o they_o j._n oh_o first_o argument_n to_o prove_v that_o presbyter_n may_v ordain_v be_v because_o they_o be_v scripture-bishop_n plea_n p._n 12_o 13._o he_o prove_v the_o identity_n of_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n time_n and_o some_o age_n after_o to_o this_o argument_n the_o rector_n answer_v 1._o he_o grant_v they_o be_v the_o same_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n 127._o p._n 126_o 127._o and_o be_v the_o ordinary_a ruler_n of_o the_o church_n but_o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v above_o they_o nothing_o but_o the_o brightness_n of_o truth_n can_v extort_v such_o a_o confession_n from_o he_o for_o 1._o if_o presbyter_n and_o bishop_n be_v the_o same_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n let_v he_o show_v we_o who_o have_v power_n afterward_o to_o distinguish_v they_o 2._o if_o they_o be_v the_o same_o they_o have_v the_o same_o power_n therefore_o if_o the_o bishop_n have_v power_n to_o ordain_v so_o have_v the_o presbyter_n if_o the_o presbyter_n have_v no_o such_o power_n no_o more_o have_v the_o bishop_n thus_o he_o have_v kind_o establish_v our_o argument_n but_o i_o hope_v his_o episcopal_a friend_n will_v not_o impute_v it_o to_o any_o ill_a design_n in_o he_o for_o he_o be_v full_a of_o good_a will_n to_o their_o cause_n and_o it_o be_v their_o own_o fault_n that_o they_o have_v choose_v no_o better_o a_o advocate_n 3._o but_o he_o hope_v to_o come_v off_o by_o say_v that_o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v above_o the_o presbyter_n or_o bishop_n for_o hereafter_o you_o must_v take_v they_o for_o one_o and_o the_o same_o timothy_n and_o titus_n evangelist_n be_v above_o the_o bishop_n what_o then_o it_o be_v as_o natural_a to_o infer_v thence_o that_o presbyter_n be_v above_o bishop_n as_o that_o bishop_n be_v above_o presbyter_n not_o only_o evangelist_n but_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n be_v superior_a to_o ordinary_a minister_n but_o no_o example_n have_v be_v yet_o produce_v that_o one_o ordinary_a minister_n be_v superior_a to_o another_o ordinary_a minister_n no_o instance_n can_v be_v give_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n of_o any_o one_o mere_a presbyter_n that_o be_v superior_a to_o another_o presbyter_n if_o there_o must_v be_v some_o church-officer_n call_v bishop_n superior_a to_o presbyter_n because_o evangelist_n be_v so_o by_o the_o same_o reason_n there_o ought_v to_o be_v some_o church-officer_n superior_a to_o bishop_n because_o the_o prophet_n be_v superior_a to_o the_o evangelist_n and_o another_o sort_n of_o church-officer_n superior_a to_o they_o also_o because_o the_o apostle_n be_v superior_a to_o the_o prophet_n he_o subscribe_v to_o j._n oh_o assertion_n 128._o p._n 128._o that_o there_o be_v several_a bishop_n in_o one_o church_n in_o the_o apostle_n day_n and_o that_o those_o mention_v in_o scripture_n be_v not_o of_o our_o english_a species_n therefore_o by_o his_o own_o confession_n english_a bishop_n be_v not_o scripture-bishop_n but_o there_o be_v a_o order_n of_o church-officer_n above_o these_o presbyter-bishop_n say_v he_o as_o we_o have_v demonstrate_v in_o the_o church_n of_o crete_n and_o ephesus_n there_o be_v no_o less_o than_o three_o order_n above_o they_o that_o be_v apostle_n prophet_n and_o evangelist_n each_o of_o they_o extraordinary_a church-officer_n eph._n 4.11_o design_v for_o the_o plant_v of_o the_o christian_a church_n as_o the_o ordinary_a pastora_n and_o teacher_n be_v appoint_v for_o the_o propagate_a of_o it_o unto_o the_o end_n of_o time_n the_o foundation_n be_v to_o be_v lay_v by_o those_o extraordinary_a church-officer_n the_o superstructure_n to_o be_v carry_v on_o according_a to_o the_o platform_n they_o leave_v we_o by_o ordinary_a officer_n j._n o._n prove_v out_o of_o justin_n martyr_n and_o the_o syriac_a version_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n that_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n be_v the_o same_o in_o the_o age_n after_o the_o apostle_n p._n 13_o 14._o this_o the_o rector_n prudent_o overlook_v he_o thus_o paraphrase_v on_o 1_o tim._n 5.17_o they_o who_o rule_n well_o 129._o p._n 129._o and_o also_o labour_v in_o the_o word_n and_o doctrine_n deserve_v better_o than_o they_o only_a who_o rule_n well_o but_o do_v withal_o labour_n in_o the_o word_n and_o doctrine_n here_o he_o suppose_v that_o some_o in_o the_o church_n may_v rule_v well_o who_o dont_fw-fr labour_n in_o the_o word_n and_o doctrine_n but_o who_o be_v these_o he_o will_v not_o say_v bishop_n for_o then_o the_o presbyter_n who_o rule_v well_o and_o labour_n in_o the_o word_n and_o doctrine_n be_v worthy_a of_o more_o honour_n than_o the_o bishop_n that_o he_o will_v not_o like_a there_o remain_v no_o other_o but_o the_o
presbyterian_o rule_v elder_n who_o he_o vindicate_v by_o his_o kind_a paraphrase_n have_v this_o gentleman_n be_v retain_v by_o they_o he_o can_v not_o better_o have_v plead_v their_o cause_n and_o although_o the_o elder_n 130._o p._n 130._o proceed_v he_o receive_v a_o commission_n from_o st._n paul_n and_o peter_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d act_n 20.28_o 1_o pet._n 5.1_o 2._o will_n it_o thence_o follow_v that_o there_o be_v none_o to_o overrule_a they_o or_o do_v it_o hence_o appear_v that_o these_o elder_n have_v power_n to_o ordain_v 1._o it_o hence_o follow_v they_o be_v real_a bishop_n as_o he_o have_v confess_v and_o if_o ordination_n be_v a_o branch_n of_o episcopal_a power_n as_o he_o say_v it_o be_v these_o elder_n have_v power_n to_o ordain_v 2._o it_o hence_o follow_v that_o these_o presbyter_n be_v the_o supreme_a ordinary_a church-ruler_n if_o bishop_n be_v such_o the_o extraordinary_a superior_a ruler_n be_v temporary_a he_o dare_v almost_o swear_v it_o ibid._n ibid._n that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d imply_v not_o the_o ordain_v power_n very_o say_v he_o if_o this_o be_v so_o every_o believer_n have_v the_o same_o power_n for_o they_o be_v bid_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o play_v the_o bishop_n or_o as_o we_o translate_v it_o to_o look_v diligent_o lest_o any_o man_n fail_v of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n heb._n 12.15_o be_v all_o believer_n bid_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o look_v diligent_o to_o the_o flock_n as_o the_o pastor_n of_o it_o if_o they_o be_v not_o this_o allegation_n be_v impertinent_a he_o say_v the_o ordinary_a elder_n have_v not_o the_o supreme_a authority_n over_o the_o church_n ibid._n ibid._n after_o the_o time_n we_o have_v assign_v nor_o do_v they_o ever_o ordain_v elder_n this_o imply_v that_o the_o ordinary_a elder_n have_v the_o supreme_a authority_n before_o the_o time_n he_o assign_v and_o it_o be_v certain_a the_o elder_n of_o ephesus_n have_v it_o in_o act_n 20.28_o he_o can_v prove_v they_o be_v ever_o deprive_v of_o it_o we_o have_v prove_v that_o they_o have_v the_o supreme_a authority_n after_o the_o write_n of_o the_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n we_o have_v also_o prove_v out_o of_o act_n 13.1_o 2._o and_o 1_o tim._n 4.14_o that_o ordinary_a elder_n do_v ordain_v and_o have_v vindicated_n those_o text_n from_o his_o corrupt_a gloss_n j._n o._n observe_v that_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o mention_v superior_a bishop_n in_o his_o catalogue_n of_o gospel-minister_n ibid._n ibid._n eph._n 4.11_o mr._n g._n assign_v this_o for_o a_o reason_n bishop_n as_o a_o distinct_a species_n of_o church-officer_n be_v not_o as_o yet_o establish_v the_o itenerant_a or_o unfixed_a evangelist_n govern_v the_o church_n under_o the_o apostle_n and_o ordain_v elder_n for_o '_o they_o 1._o here_o be_v a_o fair_a confession_n there_o be_v no_o bishop_n in_o the_o christian_a church_n when_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o ephesian_n be_v write_v which_o be_v in_o paul_n first_o bond_n at_o rome_n we_o have_v prove_v that_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n be_v write_v before_o his_o first_o bond_n and_o so_o timothy_n can_v be_v no_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n 2._o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n be_v govern_v by_o presbyter_n act_n 20.28_o without_o either_o evangelist_n or_o apostle_n to_o oversee_v they_o that_o we_o read_v of_o the_o apostle_n commit_v the_o flock_n whole_o and_o sole_o to_o they_o when_o he_o part_v with_o they_o have_v no_o thought_n of_o ever_o see_v they_o again_o v._o 25._o 3._o he_o grant_v that_o evangelist_n be_v unfixed_a officer_n under_o the_o apostle_n and_o ordain_v elder_n as_o such_o timothy_n and_o titus_n may_v ordain_v elder_n in_o ephesus_n and_o crete_n as_o unfixed_a evangelist_n for_o such_o they_o be_v after_o the_o epistle_n write_v to_o they_o 2_o tim._n 4.9_o 21._o tit._n 3.12_o 2_o tim._n 4.10_o therefore_o those_o epistle_n do_v not_o make_v they_o fix_v governor_n as_o he_o suppose_v j._n o._n take_v notice_n that_o the_o papist_n urge_v the_o instance_n of_o timothy_n and_o titus_n for_o superior_a bishop_n against_o the_o protestant_n and_o that_o the_o bishop_n best_a argument_n have_v be_v dextrous_o manage_v against_o the_o whole_a reformation_n what_o can_v the_o rector_n say_v to_o this_o matter_n of_o fact_n be_v so_o plain_a that_o he_o can_v deny_v it_o and_o therefore_o endeavour_v to_o palliate_v it_o as_o well_o as_o he_o can_v j._n o._n say_v he_o in_o this_o very_a book_n have_v make_v use_n of_o the_o popish_a schoolman_n 131._o p._n 131._o p._n 55._o 107._o and_o therefore_o i_o can_v avoid_v tax_v he_o with_o great_a insincerity_n and_o partiality_n the_o rector_n invention_n run_v low_a that_o he_o can_v find_v nothing_o but_o the_o old_a dull_a threadbare_a charge_n of_o insincerity_n which_o we_o have_v have_v over_o and_o over_o but_o the_o comfort_n of_o it_o be_v his_o tongue_n be_v no_o slander_n all_o the_o difference_n between_o j._n oh_o argument_n out_o of_o the_o popish_a doctor_n and_o mr._n g's_o argument_n out_o of_o they_o be_v this_o 1._o he_o tread_v in_o their_o step_n without_o once_o name_v they_o j._n o._n name_n they_o all_o along_o when_o he_o make_v use_v of_o they_o 2._o j._n o._n quote_v the_o popish_a doctor_n against_o themselves_o and_o for_o the_o reform_a church_n who_o most_o of_o they_o have_v no_o bishop_n and_o all_o will_v allow_v that_o the_o testimony_n of_o a_o adversary_n be_v good_a against_o himself_o mr._n g._n improve_v their_o argument_n against_o the_o reform_a church_n who_o they_o and_o he_o condemn_v as_o no_o church_n for_o want_v of_o ordain_v bishop_n the_o rector_n be_v too_o cunning_a to_o deliver_v thc_a conclusion_n in_o express_a word_n but_o he_o lay_v down_o and_o endeavour_n to_o establish_v those_o premise_n that_o necessary_o infer_v this_o conclusion_n that_o popish_a ordination_n be_v valid_a and_o that_o all_o the_o ordination_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n except_o those_o in_o england_n and_o ireland_n by_o bishop_n be_v a_o nullity_n this_o be_v the_o design_n of_o his_o book_n in_o which_o he_o pretend_v to_o prove_v that_o no_o ordinary_a presbyter_n have_v power_n to_o ordain_v and_o that_o no_o instance_n can_v be_v give_v in_o all_o the_o new_a testament_n of_o any_o ordain_v presbyter_n and_o that_o bishop_n be_v superior_a to_o presbyter_n by_o a_o divine_a right_n the_o truth_n be_v the_o performance_n be_v as_o weak_a as_o the_o undertake_n be_v bold_a i_o leave_v it_o to_o the_o reader_n to_o judge_n who_o be_v to_o be_v charge_v with_o insincerity_n one_o that_o defend_v the_o reform_a church_n against_o the_o popish_a writer_n though_o he_o quote_v they_o sometime_o against_o themselves_o or_o one_o who_o under_o the_o name_n of_o a_o protestant_n join_v with_o the_o popish_a church_n and_o doctor_n in_o destroy_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o protestant_a reform_a church_n since_o we_o like_v not_o popish_a argument_n 132._o p._n 132._o one_o thing_n he_o will_v be_v bold_a to_o tell_v j._n o._n that_o he_o will_v here_o meet_v with_o a_o argument_n borrow_v from_o bishop_n pearson_n which_o he_o think_v neither_o any_o papist_n nor_o j._n o._n himself_o ever_o think_v of_o before_o who_o so_o bold_a as_o blind_a bayard_n this_o man_n bold_o tell_v we_o that_o no_o papist_n ever_o think_v of_o bishop_n pearson_n argument_n draw_v from_o the_o time_n of_o write_v the_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n etc._n etc._n i_o show_v before_o that_o the_o seminary_n at_o rheims_n think_v of_o the_o bishop_n argument_n before_o he_o be_v bear_v the_o rector_n have_v a_o great_a many_o quality_n that_o be_v very_o singular_a this_o among_o other_o that_o when_o he_o be_v remote_a from_o truth_n he_o be_v then_o most_o confident_a he_o think_v j._n o._n never_o think_v of_o this_o argument_n before_o his_o memory_n be_v as_o defective_a as_o his_o read_n j._n o._n tell_v he_o before_o his_o book_n be_v talk_v of_o that_o he_o have_v think_v of_o this_o argument_n and_o have_v prepare_v a_o dissertation_n to_o vindicate_v the_o old_a chronology_n some_o gentleman_n that_o be_v then_o present_a may_v relieve_v his_o memory_n if_o need_v he_o j._n o._n argue_v that_o those_o word_n lay_v hand_n sudden_o on_o no_o man_n do_v not_o prove_v the_o sole_a power_n of_o ordination_n in_o timothy_n to_o this_o he_o answer_v it_o ought_v to_o be_v hence_o conclude_v that_o the_o sole_a power_n of_o ordination_n be_v in_o timothy_n 133._o p._n 133._o till_o j._n o._n can_v produce_v a_o like_a commission_n give_v to_o the_o presbyter_n that_o have_v be_v prove_v from_o act_n 13.1_o 2._o 1_o tim._n 4.14_o he_o add_v j._n oh_o reason_n be_v a_o very_a pleasant_a one_o it_o may_v as_o well_o follow_v say_v j._n o._n that_o the_o sole_a power_n of_o teach_v belong_v
to_o he_o because_o the_o apostle_n hid_n he_o be_v instant_a in_o preach_v the_o word_n by_o no_o mean_n say_v mr._n g._n because_o the_o apostle_n direct_v he_o express_o to_o appoint_v other_o teacher_n 2_o tim._n 22._o we_o desire_v to_o see_v some_o like_a passage_n of_o other_o ordainer_n beside_o timothy_n the_o apostle_n or_o rather_o the_o holy_a ghost_n appoint_v several_a bishop_n in_o ephesus_n act_v 20.28_o if_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n belong_v to_o bishop_n as_o such_o these_o ephesian_a bishop_n be_v ordainer_n it_o be_v a_o old_a and_o a_o true_a maxim_n quatenus_fw-la ad_fw-la omne_fw-la valet_fw-la consequentia_fw-la 2._o but_o lest_o we_o shall_v want_v other_o ordainer_n he_o will_v furnish_v we_o with_o some_o from_o 2_o tim._n 2.2_o which_o though_o his_o argument_n incline_v he_o to_o understand_v it_o of_o teacher_n at_o present_a yet_o in_o another_o mood_n he_o explain_v it_o of_o ordainer_n p._n 53._o j._n o._n prove_v that_o timothy_n can_v not_o receive_v the_o sole_a power_n of_o ordination_n because_o paul_n himself_o take_v in_o the_o presbyter_n 1_o tim._n 4.14_o to_o this_o the_o rector_n say_v it_o be_v something_o to_o the_o purpose_n if_o it_o be_v well_o prove_v 1_o tim._n 4.14_o have_v be_v full_o discuss_v already_o say_v he_o and_o full_o vindicated_n say_v i_o from_o his_o self-contradicting-exception_n j._n o._n give_v another_o reason_n to_o prove_v that_o timothy_n can_v not_o be_v entrust_v with_o the_o sole_a power_n of_o ordination_n because_o paul_n join_v barnabas_n with_o he_o act_v 14.23_o the_o rector_n answer_v the_o mischief_n be_v barnabas_n be_v paul_n be_v equal_a ibid._n ibid._n and_o a_o apostle_n as_o well_o as_o himself_o act_v 14.4.14_o many_o think_v barnabas_n be_v not_o paul_n equal_a that_o he_o be_v proper_o a_o evangelist_n 783._o evangelist_n vid._n sad._n ad_fw-la tur._n soph._n p._n 783._o evangelist_n be_v secondary_a apostle_n apostoli_fw-la vicarii_fw-la as_o some_o call_v they_o they_o seem_v to_o be_v include_v in_o apostle_n 1_o cor._n 12.28_o compare_v with_o eph._n 4.11_o it_o be_v true_a he_o be_v call_v a_o apostle_n act_v 14.4_o 14._o so_o be_v other_o who_o be_v not_o apostle_n in_o a_o strict_a sense_n rom._n 16.7_o 2_o cor._n 8.23_o phil._n 2.25_o 2._o but_o suppose_v he_o be_v a_o apostle_n in_o a_o strict_a sense_n and_o paul_n equal_a j._n oh_o argument_n still_o hold_v good_a if_o paul_n and_o apostle_n join_v barnabas_n with_o he_o another_o apostle_n or_o evangelist_n it_o be_v not_o likely_a that_o timothy_n will_v ordain_v alone_o but_o that_o he_o join_v the_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n with_o he_o if_o a_o apostle_n will_v not_o lay_v on_o hand_n alone_o much_o less_o will_v a_o evangelist_n it_o be_v but_o j._n oh_o dream_n say_v he_o 134._o p._n 134._o when_o he_o talk_v of_o other_o ordinary_a presbyter_n ordain_v with_o these_o two_o apostle_n i_o desire_v to_o see_v this_o make_v out_o by_o any_o tolerable_a conjecture_n 1._o j._n o._n do_v not_o affirm_v that_o presbyter_n ordain_v with_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n act_v 14.23_o because_o it_o be_v uncertain_a whether_o there_o be_v any_o in_o these_o church_n before_o this_o time_n 2._o but_o if_o there_o be_v any_o it_o be_v probable_a they_o join_v in_o the_o action_n as_o they_o do_v in_o timothy_n ordination_n 1_o tim._n 4.14_o which_o may_v ground_v a_o probable_a conjecture_n paul_n intention_n to_o go_v to_o ephesus_n ibid._n ibid._n 1_o tim._n 3.14_o &_o 4.13_o hinder_v not_o timothy_n from_o be_v the_o resident_n bishop_n there_o as_o he_o think_v 1._o his_o intention_n of_o go_v short_o to_o ephesus_n show_v the_o inconsistency_n of_o mr._n g's_o hypothesis_n for_o he_o tell_v we_o before_o p._n 90._o that_o the_o apostle_n govern_v the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n himself_o by_o the_o presbyter_n in_o his_o absence_n who_o be_v responsible_a to_o he_o this_o continue_a so_o long_o say_v he_o as_o he_o be_v vigorous_a and_o active_a and_o have_v opportunity_n to_o oversee_v both_o the_o flock_n and_o the_o elder_n themselves_o and_o now_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o this_o church_n be_v govern_v by_o a_o bishop_n when_o the_o apostle_n be_v both_o able_a and_o resolve_v to_o oversee_v it_o 2._o he_o tell_v we_o before_o that_o the_o presbyter_n be_v responsible_a to_o paul_n and_o now_o he_o make_v timothy_n responsible_a to_o he_o nothing_o can_v be_v infer_v from_o their_o be_v subject_a to_o paul_n that_o do_v not_o equal_o affect_n timothy_n 3._o if_o paul_n go_v to_o timothy_n do_v not_o hinder_v his_o being_n resident_n at_o ephesus_n i_o hope_v timothy_n go_v to_o paul_n do_v 2_o tim._n 4.21_o except_o the_o rector_n can_v prove_v that_o timothy_n have_v a_o ubiquitarian_a body_n if_o he_o say_v he_o return_v again_o in_o a_o little_a time_n to_o ephesus_n he_o ought_v to_o prove_v it_o which_o he_o can_v never_o do_v from_o the_o write_n of_o the_o apostle_n he_o charge_v j._n o._n with_o foist_v the_o word_n till_o he_o come_v ibid._n ibid._n into_o 1_o tim._n 1.3_o this_o charge_n be_v as_o groundless_a as_o it_o be_v disingenuous_a for_o j._n o._n do_v not_o quote_v thc_a word_n of_o scripture_n but_o give_v the_o meaning_n of_o it_o in_o these_o word_n paul_n do_v not_o enjoin_v timothy_n to_o be_v resident_a at_o ephesus_n but_o beseech_v he_o to_o abide_v there_o till_o he_o come_v 1_o tim._n 1.3_o &_o 4.13_o 14._o which_o he_o intend_v short_o to_o do_v 1_o tim._n 3.14_o 15._o the_o join_v of_o the_o scripture_n together_o and_o the_o explain_n of_o one_o scripture_n by_o another_o will_v be_v allow_v by_o any_o one_o that_o do_v not_o seek_v occasion_n of_o quarrel_v till_o i_o come_v bespeak_v a_o temporary_a stay_n at_o ephesus_n for_o he_o be_v beseech_v by_o paul_n to_o supply_v his_o absence_n there_o when_o the_o apostle_n come_v in_o person_n there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o a_o substitute_n whether_o timothy_n go_v from_o ephesus_n to_o paul_n or_o whether_o paul_n go_v from_o macedonia_n to_o ephesus_n it_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n his_o work_n there_o be_v temporary_a and_o become_v unnecessary_a when_o the_o apostle_n be_v with_o he_o thus_o paul_n send_v he_o not_o long_o before_o this_o to_o macedonia_n and_o sometime_o after_o follow_v he_o thither_o act_v 19.21_o 22._o in_o like_a manner_n he_o design_v to_o follow_v he_o to_o ephesus_n 1_o tim._n 3.14_o the_o rector_n take_v for_o grant_v what_o he_o shall_v have_v prove_v that_o timothy_n be_v oblige_v to_o perpetual_a residence_n at_o ephesus_n which_o have_v not_o be_v yet_o prove_v he_o call_v he_o away_o 2_o tim._n 4.21_o and_o so_o he_o do_v titus_n from_o crete_n tit._n 3.12_o all_o that_o have_v be_v hitherto_o urge_v for_o his_o perpetual_a residence_n at_o ephesus_n be_v that_o in_o 1_o tim._n 1.3_o i_o beseech_v thou_o to_o abide_v still_o at_o ephesus_n these_o word_n do_v not_o look_v like_o the_o installing_n of_o a_o bishop_n in_o his_o diocese_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v frequent_o a_o short_a abode_n mat._n 15.32_o mark_v 8.2_o timothy_n be_v say_v to_o abide_v still_o at_o athens_n when_o his_o stay_n be_v very_o short_a there_o act_v 17.14_o 15._o he_o call_v upon_o we_o to_o prove_v that_o timothy_n be_v furnish_v with_o the_o same_o power_n at_o corinth_n 135_o p._n 135_o philippi_n thessalonica_n etc._n etc._n i_o will_v prove_v it_o from_o his_o own_o confession_n p._n 130._o the_o unfixed_a evangelist_n govern_v the_o church_n under_o the_o apostle_n and_o ordain_v elder_n for_o they_o thus_o he_o here_o he_o ascribe_v the_o power_n of_o govenirg_n and_o ordain_v unto_o the_o unfixed_a evangelist_n and_o yet_o have_v the_o confidence_n to_o require_v we_o to_o prove_v it_o whereas_o then_o say_v he_o ibid._n ibid._n paul_n beseech_v he_o to_o abide_v and_o reside_v at_o ephesus_n and_o we_o never_o find_v he_o in_o the_o apostle_n company_n again_o nor_o in_o any_o other_o place_n after_o we_o must_v take_v he_o for_o the_o resident_n evangelist_n or_o bishop_n here_o until_o j._n o._n shall_v please_v to_o tell_v we_o out_o of_o sacred_a or_o ecclesiastical_a history_n whither_o he_o remove_v i_o will_v show_v he_o that_o timothy_n be_v in_o paul_n company_n and_o in_o another_o place_n after_o paul_n beseech_v he_o to_o abide_v at_o ephesus_n in_o order_n to_o which_o i_o desire_v he_o to_o grant_v this_o reasonable_a supposition_n viz._n that_o the_o second_o epistle_n to_o he_o be_v write_v after_o the_o first_o in_o the_o first_o epistle_n paul_n say_v he_o beseech_v he_o to_o stay_v at_o ephesus_n 1_o tim._n 1.3_o in_o the_o secod_n epistle_n he_o call_v he_o to_o rome_n 2_o tim._n 4.9_o 21._o doubtless_o he_o go_v thither_o according_a to_o the_o apostle_n order_n and_o we_o find_v he_o there_o with_o the_o apostle_n when_o he_o write_v
his_o epistle_n to_o the_o philippian_n phil._n 1.1_o col._n 1.1_o philem_n 1._o in_o like_a manner_n he_o send_v for_o titus_n from_o crete_n to_o nicopolis_n tit._n 3.12_o and_o afterward_o send_v he_o to_o dalmatia_n 2_o tim._n 4.10_o thus_o we_o have_v tell_v he_o in_o compliance_n with_o his_o desire_n out_o of_o sacred_a history_n that_o not_o only_a timothy_n but_o titus_n also_o remove_v the_o former_a to_o rome_n the_o latter_a to_o nicopolis_n and_o dalmatia_n as_o to_o ecclesiastical_a history_n we_o have_v little_a certain_a concern_v timothy_n or_o any_o other_o of_o the_o apostle_n survivor_n and_o successor_n as_o eusebius_n observe_v 4._o observe_v hist_o iii_o 4._o he_o say_v of_o timothy_n it_o be_v report_v he_o be_v bishop_n of_o ephesus_n but_o other_o historian_n say_v he_o removed_z from_z ephesus_z and_o come_v into_o britain_n and_o baptise_a king_n lucius_n and_o his_o subject_n and_o remove_v hence_o to_o curie_n in_o germany_n where_o he_o be_v bishop_n and_o die_v a_o martyr_n this_o be_v report_v by_o grave_a author_n nauclerus_fw-la petrus_n de_fw-fr natalibus_n pantaleon_n de_fw-fr viris_fw-la illustrib_n germ._n etc._n etc._n nauclerus_fw-la say_v he_o find_v this_o record_v in_o the_o legend_n of_o st._n thomas_n the_o apostle_n which_o agree_v with_o legend_n of_o st._n lucius_n which_o be_v to_o be_v find_v among_o the_o record_n of_o the_o church_n of_o curie_n 472._o curie_n chron._n vol._n ii_o gen._n 6._o p._n 472._o i_o do_v not_o pretend_v to_o warrant_v for_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o account_n there_o may_v be_v some_o truth_n though_o intermix_v with_o fable_n even_o in_o a_o legend_n archbishop_n usher_n that_o great_a antiquary_n quote_v this_o story_n in_o his_o britan._n eccles_n primord_n cap._n 3._o it_o may_v not_o be_v improbable_a but_o timothy_n may_v preach_v in_o these_o country_n if_o paul_n be_v here_o as_o the_o rector_n seem_v to_o allow_v p._n 90._o for_o timothy_n be_v his_o companion_n in_o most_o of_o his_o travel_n and_o serve_v with_o he_o in_o the_o gospel_n as_o a_o son_n with_o the_o father_n phil._n 2.22_o j._n o._n oppose_a dr._n whittaker_n the_o learned_a cambridge_n professor_n and_o maul_n of_o popery_n to_o bellarmine_n who_o ground_n timothy_n episcopal_a jurisdiction_n upon_o 1_o tim._n 5.19_o against_o a_o elder_a receive_v not_o a_o accusation_n the_o dr._n say_v that_o to_o receive_v a_o accusation_n be_v to_o acquaint_v the_o church_n with_o the_o crime_n which_o equal_v and_o inferior_n may_v do_v the_o rector_n have_v two_o or_o three_o page_n in_o confutation_n of_o dr._n whittaker_n 138._o p._n 135_o 136_o 137_o 138._o the_o sum_n of_o which_o be_v that_o if_o timothy_n be_v only_o to_o acquaint_v the_o church_n with_o it_o he_o be_v no_o better_a than_o a_o informer_n or_o prosecutor_n he_o may_v be_v a_o ecclesiastical_a judge_n though_o he_o act_v in_o conjunction_n with_o the_o church_n as_o paul_n do_v in_o excommunicate_v the_o incestuous_a corinthian_a 1_o cor._n 5.3_o 4_o 5._o the_o doctor_n do_v not_o deny_v he_o to_o be_v superior_a to_o the_o elder_n as_o he_o be_v a_o evangelist_n but_o show_v the_o invalidity_n of_o the_o argument_n draw_v from_o his_o receive_a accusation_n j._n o._n show_v p._n 21._o that_o the_o presbyter_n and_o the_o people_n may_v receive_v a_o accusation_n against_o their_o bishop_n and_o instance_a in_fw-la epithetus_fw-la and_o the_o people_n of_o assura_n to_o who_o cyprian_n write_v not_o to_o admit_v fortunatianus_n to_o be_v bishop_n again_o because_o he_o have_v deny_v the_o faith_n he_o instance_v also_o in_o the_o clergy_n and_o people_n of_o spain_n who_o reject_v bisilides_n and_o martialis_n their_o bishop_n because_o they_o have_v sacrifice_v to_o idol_n the_o rector_n wise_o overlook_v all_o this_o and_o proceed_v to_o another_o argument_n j._n o._n ask_v how_o come_v paul_n to_o promise_v to_o come_v short_o to_o ephesus_n if_o he_o have_v settle_v a_o successor_n there_o mr._n g._n answer_n this_o be_v a_o trifle_a objection_n and_o make_v equal_o against_o the_o presbyter_n of_o ephesus_n act_v 20.28_o who_o ever_o think_v timothy_n so_o absolute_a as_o not_o to_o be_v subject_a to_o st._n paul_n when_o this_o gentleman_n give_v a_o diminutive_a epithet_n to_o our_o argument_n understand_v he_o by_o the_o rule_n of_o contrary_n you_o may_v perceive_v by_o his_o uneasiness_n that_o he_o be_v graveled_n and_o will_v relieve_v himself_o by_o a_o big_a word_n which_o may_v disparage_v a_o argument_n with_o unthinking_a people_n 1._o this_o trifle_a objection_n as_o he_o call_v it_o show_v how_o groundless_a his_o hypothesis_n be_v that_o paul_n settle_v timothy_n at_o ephesus_n when_o he_o can_v oversee_v the_o church_n no_o long_o 2._o it_o show_v the_o weakness_n of_o his_o reason_n that_o the_o elder_n have_v no_o episcopal_a power_n because_o they_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o apostle_n the_o scope_n of_o a_o great_a part_n of_o his_o book_n be_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o presbyter_n be_v not_o supreme_a governor_n because_o the_o apostle_n be_v above_o they_o see_v p._n 38_o 39_o 40_o 41._o he_o do_v in_o the_o same_o place_n affirm_v timothy_n and_o titus_n to_o be_v supreme_a governor_n here_o he_o forget_v all_o his_o former_a reason_n and_o acknowledge_v timothy_n subject_a to_o paul_n either_o timothy_n be_v no_o supreme_a governor_n or_o bishop_n because_o he_o be_v subject_a to_o paul_n or_o the_o presbyter_n of_o ephesus_n may_v be_v supreme_a governor_n notwithstanding_o their_o subjection_n to_o he_o 3._o what_o he_o add_v of_o his_o visit_v his_o neighbour_n presbyter_n 139._o p._n 139._o without_o claim_v any_o power_n over_o he_o and_o his_o flock_n be_v very_o impertinent_a for_o a_o apostolical_a visitation_n be_v something_o different_a from_o a_o private_a visit_n from_o one_o neighbour_n to_o another_o i_o hope_v he_o will_v allow_v it_o to_o be_v as_o solemn_a as_o any_o episcopal_a visitation_n i_o may_v return_v his_o own_o word_n upon_o he_o but_o such_o stuff_n as_o this_o do_v our_o author_n impose_v upon_o his_o friend_n ibid._n ibid._n and_o needless_o trouble_v his_o adversary_n with_o but_o i_o shall_v forbear_v he_o think_v that_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n consist_v of_o many_o congregation_n though_o he_o agree_v that_o it_o consist_v not_o of_o two_o hundred_o or_o three_o hundred_o parish_n or_o congregation_n ibid._n ibid._n as_o our_o diocese_n do_v here_o we_o have_v his_o own_o confession_n that_o the_o modern_a diocese_n be_v very_o different_a from_o that_o of_o ephesus_n and_o other_o ancient_a diocese_n that_o there_o be_v more_o congregation_n than_o one_o he_o prove_v from_o the_o jus_fw-la divinum_fw-la ministerii_fw-la anglicani_n 140._o p._n 140._o 1._o suppose_v there_o be_v two_o or_o three_o congregation_n in_o ephesus_n as_o the_o london_z minister_n conceive_v there_o may_v be_v more_o than_o one_o what_o be_v two_o or_o three_o to_o two_o or_o three_o hundred_o it_o can_v never_o be_v prove_v there_o be_v more_o christian_n in_o ephesus_n in_o timothy_n or_o if_o you_o will_v in_o ignatius_n his_o time_n than_o be_v in_o some_o of_o our_o great_a parish_n which_o contain_v some_o ten_o some_o twenty_o some_o thirty_o thousand_o soul_n 2._o some_o of_o our_o large_a parish_n have_v several_a chapel_n some_o three_o some_o four_o some_o six_o he_o know_v a_o parish_n in_o his_o neighbourhood_n manchester_n neighbourhood_n manchester_n that_o have_v seven_o or_o eight_o will_v he_o say_v that_o a_o rector_n who_o have_v several_a curate_n under_o he_o be_v a_o diocesan_n bishop_n i_o hear_v the_o rector_n parish_n have_v four_o or_o five_o chapel_n in_o it_o he_o think_v the_o number_n of_o city_n 142._o p._n 142._o or_o great_a town_n in_o crete_n be_v extraordinary_a because_o florus_n call_v it_o a_o noble_a island_n his_o proof_n be_v a_o little_a extraordinary_a must_v every_o noble_a island_n have_v a_o extraordinary_a number_n of_o city_n well_o but_o to_o do_v he_o a_o kindness_n i_o will_v tell_v he_o the_o number_n of_o the_o most_o considerable_a city_n or_o town_n in_o crete_n pliny_n who_o live_v in_o vespasian_n time_n say_v there_o be_v about_o forty_o famous_a town_n in_o crete_n and_o the_o memory_n of_o about_o forty_o more_o 4.12_o more_o nat._n hist_o 4.12_o but_o let_v the_o city_n of_o it_o be_v more_o or_o less_o it_o be_v all_o one_o to_o my_o argument_n we_o have_v prove_v titus_n already_o to_o be_v a_o evangelist_n and_o the_o number_n of_o city_n he_o be_v to_o ordain_v elder_n in_o be_v a_o confirmation_n of_o it_o for_o by_o his_o own_o confession_n crete_n have_v have_v in_o it_o at_o one_o time_n four_o arch-bishop_n and_o twenty_o one_o bishop_n 142._o bishop_n p._n 142._o and_o now_o we_o be_v upon_o this_o subject_a let_v we_o see_v the_o extent_n of_o their_o bishopric_n he_o tell_v we_o out_o of_o dr._n heylin_n there_o be_v
or_o five_o lesser_a oratory_n which_o be_v probable_o like_o our_o chapel_n one_o of_o which_o do_v bear_v the_o name_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o other_o of_o some_o martyr_n 49._o martyr_n niceph._n eccl._n hist._n vii_o 49._o this_o may_v well_o agree_v with_o eusebius_n account_n viz._n that_o he_o build_v there_o many_o oratory_n and_o splendid_a house_n of_o god_n 47._o god_n vid._n con._n iii_o 47._o eusebius_n magnify_v all_o the_o action_n of_o constantine_n and_o will_v not_o have_v omit_v such_o a_o number_n of_o temple_n as_o the_o rector_n fancy_n to_o be_v there_o ignatius_n exhort_v polycarp_n 13._o ign._n ad_fw-la pol._n p._n 12_o 13._o not_o to_o neglect_v the_o widow_n to_o be_v their_o curator_n after_o the_o lord_n to_o have_v frequent_a assembly_n to_o seek_v all_o by_o name_n and_o not_o to_o despise_v the_o men-servant_n and_o maid-servant_n here_o polycarp_n be_v first_o to_o take_v care_n of_o the_o poor_a widow_n who_o be_v to_o be_v relieve_v by_o he_o or_o by_o his_o order_n this_o he_o can_v not_o well_o do_v without_o some_o knowledge_n of_o they_o 2._o to_o have_v frequent_a church-meeting_n and_o to_o seek_v all_o by_o name_n who_o ought_v to_o frequent_v the_o public_a assembly_n 3._o he_o must_v not_o neglect_v the_o very_a servant_n or_o slave_n but_o exhort_v they_o not_o to_o be_v puff_v up_o but_o to_o serve_v for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n that_o they_o may_v receive_v of_o god_n a_o more_o glorious_a liberty_n ign._n ibid._n he_o speak_v of_o christian_a slave_n and_o such_o as_o frequent_v their_o church_n assembly_n what_o can_v the_o rector_n say_v to_o this_o plain_a quotation_n that_o carry_v its_o own_o evidence_n with_o it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o new_a testament_n say_v he_o 152._o p._n 152._o signify_v to_o seek_v the_o conversion_n of_o unbeliever_n luke_n 19.10_o and_o if_o polycarp_n must_v seek_v the_o conversion_n of_o every_o single_a person_n in_o smyrna_n and_o deal_v with_o every_o one_o of_o they_o than_o j._n o._n have_v reduce_v this_o great_a city_n to_o a_o small_a village_n this_o be_v a_o chimaera_n of_o his_o own_o ignatius_n speak_v of_o believe_v servant_n as_o be_v evident_a and_o so_o j._n o._n apply_v it_o to_o prove_v the_o extent_n of_o polycarp'_v church_n plea_n p._n 34._o but_o our_o author_n either_o wilful_o or_o ignorant_o confound_v the_o church_n of_o smyrna_n and_o the_o city_n of_o smyrna_n to_o seek_v all_o by_o name_n say_v he_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v not_o of_o every_o individual_a person_n 153._o p._n 153._o but_o of_o all_o state_n and_o condition_n of_o man_n even_o the_o low_a of_o they_o the_o slave_n this_o be_v a_o very_a poor_a evasion_n ignatius_n speak_v of_o religious_a assembly_n and_o of_o a_o pastoral_n care_n that_o the_o bishop_n must_v seek_v all_o by_o name_n the_o servant_n not_o except_v he_o must_v take_v care_n of_o his_o whole_a flock_n and_o not_o despise_v poor_a servant_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d by_o name_n can_v admit_v of_o any_o other_o tolerable_a sense_n ignatius_n in_o the_o same_o epistle_n explain_v himself_o when_o he_o say_v i_o salute_v all_o by_o name_n 16._o name_n ad_fw-la polyc._n p._n 16._o and_o some_o of_o they_o he_o name_v there_o and_o in_o another_o place_n he_o say_v you_o do_v all_o of_o you_o common_o even_o every_o man_n by_o name_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d meet_v together_o in_o jesus_n christ_n 29._o christ_n ad_fw-la eph._n p._n 29._o by_o name_n here_o respect_v every_o individual_a person_n and_o not_o the_o several_a state_n and_o condition_n of_o men._n for_o every_o member_n of_o the_o church_n ordinary_o attend_v public_a ordinance_n and_o not_o some_o of_o all_o degree_n only_o ignatius_n in_o both_o place_n speak_v of_o church-assembly_n where_o every_o one_o by_o name_n be_v to_o attend_v and_o the_o bishop_n must_v see_v that_o they_o do_v so_o and_o not_o overlook_a the_o mean_a servant_n suppose_v his_o diocesan_n require_v the_o rector_n to_o seek_v all_o his_o parishioner_n by_o name_n and_o dot_v to_o despise_v the_o servant_n i_o question_v whether_o he_o can_v satisfy_v the_o bishop_n i_o be_o sure_a he_o can_v acquit_v himself_o to_o the_o chief_a bishop_n of_o our_o soul_n by_o tell_v he_o he_o take_v care_n of_o some_o of_o all_o state_n and_o condition_n as_o well_o servant_n as_o master_n as_o well_o mechanic_n as_o rich_a shopkeeper_n 153._o p._n 153._o as_o he_o speak_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o scripture_n to_o which_o he_o refer_v mat._n 10.41_o 42._o eph._n 1.21_o and_o therefore_o they_o be_v improper_o allege_v mark_v 16.15_o be_v as_o little_a to_o the_o purpose_n the_o apostle_n can_v not_o possible_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o every_o individual_a creature_n but_o a_o bishop_n may_v seek_v all_o his_o flock_n by_o name_n if_o you_o will_v not_o allow_v he_o that_o to_o seek_v all_o by_o name_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o all_o state_n of_o man_n he_o have_v find_v out_o another_o shift_n 155._o p._n 155._o take_v care_n of_o all_o by_o name_n say_v he_o i._n e._n give_v it_o in_o charge_n to_o thy_o presbyter_n and_o deacon_n to_o do_v so_o this_o be_v a_o figment_n of_o the_o rector_n own_o brain_n which_o he_o do_v not_o pretend_v to_o ground_n upon_o any_o passage_n in_o ignatius_n he_o fancy_v the_o primitive_a bishop_n to_o be_v like_o those_o of_o the_o latter_a age_n who_o enlarge_v their_o diocese_n and_o diminish_v their_o care_n of_o the_o flock_n the_o ancient_a bishop_n take_v care_n of_o the_o flock_n in_o their_o own_o person_n and_o not_o by_o proty_n it_o be_v true_a they_o have_v their_o assist_v presbyter_n and_o govern_v the_o church_n by_o their_o unite_a council_n the_o bishop_n do_v nothing_o without_o his_o presbyter_n nor_o they_o without_o the_o bishop_n it_o be_v evident_a to_o any_o one_o that_o read_v ignatius_n his_o epistle_n to_o polycarp_n that_o he_o speak_v of_o personal_a duty_n seek_v all_o by_o name_n and_o a_o little_a after_o say_v he_o avoid_v evil_a art_n 13._o art_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n p._n 13._o the_o rector_n may_v as_o well_o say_v he_o must_v avoid_v evil_a art_n by_o his_o presbyter_n as_o seek_v all_o by_o name_n by_o they_o our_o author_n offer_v one_o observation_n for_o he_o will_v not_o be_v too_o prodigal_a on_o so_o tender_a a_o subject_a to_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n of_o smyrna_n consist_v of_o more_o congregation_n than_o one_o it_o be_v the_o first_o proof_n of_o this_o kind_n he_o have_v give_v we_o though_o we_o have_v give_v several_a to_o the_o contrary_a and_o therefore_o deserve_v regard_n my_o observation_n be_v this_o say_v he_o 156._o p._n 155_o 156._o how_o that_o ignatius_n parag._n penult_n of_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o smyrnaean_n thus_o address_n to_o the_o bishop_n it_o will_v be_v fit_a o_o most_o worthy_a polycarp_n to_o gather_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o most_o venerable_a and_o august_n assembly_n etc._n etc._n this_o imply_v a_o great_a number_n of_o presbyter_n and_o deacon_n either_o then_o the_o bishop_n of_o smyrna_n have_v many_o congregation_n under_o he_o or_o this_o little_a church_n as_o j._n o._n believe_v it_o swarm_v with_o a_o number_n of_o idle_a and_o unnecessary_a presbyter_n which_o no_o man_n in_o his_o wit_n will_v believe_v 1._o this_o argument_n he_o think_v better_a than_o any_o j._n o._n have_v produce_v to_o the_o contrary_a 155._o p._n 155._o unless_o he_o flatter_v himself_o by_o a_o unusual_a charientism_n it_o be_v possible_a a_o man_n of_o mr._n g's_o character_n may_v flatter_v himself_o whether_o it_o be_v unusual_a with_o he_o to_o do_v so_o i_o leave_v the_o reader_n to_o pass_v judgement_n 2._o his_o quotation_n be_v not_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o smyrnaean_n as_o he_o affirm_v but_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o polycarp_n 15._o polycarp_n ign._n ad_fw-la polycarp_n p._n 15._o who_o be_v bishop_n of_o smyrna_n which_o i_o suppose_v may_v occasion_v his_o mistake_n the_o epistle_n to_o the_o smyrnaean_n have_v no_o such_o passage_n 3._o the_o presbyter_n be_v the_o bishop_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d his_o council_n and_o the_o church_n in_o ignatius_n time_n be_v govern_v by_o the_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n in_o common_a he_o call_v they_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d president_n 33._o president_n ign._n ad_fw-la magn._n p._n 33._o they_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o bishop_n council_n 43._o council_n ad_fw-la phil._n p._n 43._o and_o his_o complex_n spiritual_a crown_n 37._o crown_n ad_fw-la mag._n p._n 37._o that_o sit_v round_o about_o he_o he_o call_v they_o in_o another_o place_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o presbyter_n that_o be_v with_o the_o bishop_n 39_o bishop_n ad_fw-la phil._n p._n
39_o they_o live_v with_o the_o bishop_n and_o manage_v the_o concern_v of_o the_o church_n in_o common_a they_o do_v nothing_o without_o the_o bishop_n nor_o he_o without_o they_o hence_o ignatius_n exhort_v the_o magnesian_o to_o do_v nothing_o without_o the_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n 33._o presbyter_n ign._n p._n 33._o no_o church_n assembly_n be_v hold_v without_o they_o 48._o they_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ad_fw-la tral_n p._n 48._o it_o do_v not_o appear_v by_o the_o epistle_n of_o ignatius_n that_o the_o presbyter_n be_v govern_v by_o the_o bishop_n or_o subject_a to_o he_o they_o be_v joint_a governor_n of_o the_o church_n only_o the_o bishop_n be_v chief_a for_o order_n sake_n the_o deacon_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n 31._o presbyter_n ad_fw-la mag._n p._n 31._o but_o the_o presbyter_n be_v not_o subject_a to_o the_o bishop_n it_o be_v true_a they_o can_v do_v nothing_o without_o he_o no_o more_o can_v he_o without_o they_o 4._o it_o do_v not_o appear_v that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o god-becoming_a assembly_n not_o most_o venerable_a and_o august_n as_o he_o render_v it_o consist_v only_o of_o the_o bishop_n presbyter_n and_o deacon_n as_o he_o suggest_v it_o shall_v seem_v rather_o that_o it_o be_v a_o church-assemble_o under_o the_o cnnduct_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n who_o be_v desire_v to_o send_v a_o message_n to_o the_o church_n of_o antioch_n to_o comfort_v they_o in_o the_o absence_n of_o their_o bishop_n the_o next_o paragraph_n confirm_v this_o sense_n write_v say_v ignatius_n to_o polycarp_n to_o other_o church_n 15._o ad_fw-la polyc._n p._n 15._o that_o they_o do_v the_o same_o thing_n such_o as_o be_v able_a may_v send_v foot-messenger_n other_o may_v send_v letter_n by_o thy_o messenger_n in_o the_o same_o manner_n he_o speak_v to_o the_o church_n of_o philadelphia_n it_o become_v you_o as_o the_o church_n of_o god_n to_o appoint_v a_o deacon_n to_o perform_v there_o at_o antioch_n the_o message_n of_o god_n he_o add_v a_o little_a after_o some_o near_a church_n have_v send_v bishop_n and_o some_o have_v send_v presbyter_n and_o deacon_n 45._o deacon_n ad_fw-la phil._n p._n 45._o it_o be_v the_o manner_n in_o those_o first_o age_n to_o send_v epistle_n and_o messenger_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o epistle_n write_v by_o the_o church_n of_o vienne_n and_o lion_n to_o the_o church_n of_o asia_n and_o phrygia_n concern_v the_o suffering_n of_o the_o gallic_n christian_n 1._o christian_n euseb_n eccl._n hist_o v._o 1._o therefore_o ignatius_n his_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d seem_v to_o be_v a_o assembly_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n ignatius_n call_v the_o church_n of_o smyrna_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d deo-decentissima_a in_o two_o place_n 8._o place_n ign._n ad_fw-la smyr_n p._n 1._o &_o p._n 8._o 5._o suppose_v this_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d god-becoming_a assembly_n have_v consist_v of_o the_o bishop_n and_o his_o presbyter_n it_o will_v not_o follow_v that_o there_o be_v a_o great_a number_n of_o presbyter_n ignatius_n abound_v with_o epithet_n and_o such_o as_o may_v seem_v if_o not_o swell_v at_o least_o superfluous_a he_o give_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n nine_o or_o ten_o big_a epithet_n in_o one_o breath_n as_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n he_o call_v his_o bond_n god-becoming_a bond_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 8._o 〈◊〉_d ad_fw-la smyr_n p._n 8._o he_o style_v the_o bishop_n of_o smyrna_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d worthy_a of_o god_n and_o the_o presbytery_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d become_v god_n as_o one_o bishop_n be_v god-worthy_a so_o a_o few_o presbyter_n may_v be_v god-becoming_a 6._o j._n o._n do_v not_o say_v the_o church_n of_o smyrna_n be_v a_o little_a church_n it_o may_v be_v a_o large_a church_n as_o many_o parish-church_n be_v and_o find_v work_n enough_o for_o several_a presbyter_n with_o the_o bishop_n 157._o p._n 156_o &_o 157._o what_o he_o say_v of_o the_o asian_a angel_n have_v be_v consider_v before_o he_o wonder_v that_o j._n o._n shall_v say_v the_o authorize_v bibles_n call_v the_o angel_n minister_n not_o bishop_n j._n o._n add_v this_o show_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o old_a church_n of_o england_n agreeable_a to_o many_o of_o the_o ancient_n such_o as_o aretas_n primosius_fw-la ambrose_n gregory_n the_o great_a bede_n haymo_n etc._n etc._n this_o he_o wise_o overlook_v 157_o p._n 157_o but_o ask_v what_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v say_v they_o express_v themselves_o too_o loose_o and_o negligent_o they_o express_v their_o own_o sense_n and_o that_o of_o the_o ancient_a church_n they_o can_v easy_o have_v call_v the_o angel_n bishop_n have_v they_o think_v they_o so_o our_o first_o reformer_n be_v not_o such_o loose_a negligent_a soul_n as_o some_o of_o those_o who_o pretend_v to_o correct_v they_o evidence_n themselves_o to_o be_v after_o have_v spend_v some_o page_n in_o such_o scornful_a reflection_n as_o may_v become_v he_o but_o will_v scarce_o drop_v from_o a_o scholar_n or_o a_o gentleman_n especial_o when_o no_o provocation_n be_v give_v he_o proceed_v to_o a_o ingenuous_a confession_n of_o the_o weakness_n of_o this_o argument_n for_o bishop_n from_o the_o asian_a angel_n it_o will_v have_v be_v a_o strange_a consequence_n he_o acknowledge_v that_o angel_n shall_v be_v expound_v bishop_n one_o that_o have_v authority_n over_o other_o minister_n have_v not_o he_o read_v in_o paul_n be_v two_o epistle_n that_o timothy_n have_v authority_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o ephesus_n and_o again_o in_o ignatius_n 160._o p._n 160._o that_o there_o be_v a_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n if_o these_o two_o evidence_n fall_v he_o as_o i_o have_v prove_v they_o do_v this_o of_o the_o asian_a angel_n fall_v of_o itself_o our_o author_n be_v very_o angry_a with_o j._n o._n for_o say_v that_o st._n john_n place_v the_o presbyter_n next_o the_o throne_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o angel_n at_o a_o great_a distance_n rev._n 5.11_o shall_v we_o therefore_o say_v the_o presbyter_n be_v more_o worthy_a than_o the_o bishop_n 161._o p._n 161._o the_o inference_n be_v much_o more_o natural_a than_o the_o other_o if_o angel_n be_v bishop_n thus_o j._n o._n this_o plain_a scripture-observation_n do_v so_o move_v the_o rector_n choler_n that_o he_o can_v forbear_v his_o old_a rail_a language_n if_o j._n o._n say_v he_o have_v manage_v this_o argument_n honest_o and_o sincere_o i_o will_v henceforward_o renounce_v all_o pretence_n to_o those_o scurvy_a piece_n of_o morality_n 1._o he_o himself_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o word_n may_v bear_v that_o sense_n j._n o._n put_v upon_o they_o that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d may_v be_v govern_v of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o couple_v with_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o so_o the_o angel_n be_v round_o about_o the_o throne_n and_o round_o about_o the_o elder_n it_o follow_v the_o elder_n be_v near_o the_o throne_n why_o do_v not_o he_o disprove_v this_o sense_n a_o scholar_n shall_v use_v argument_n and_o not_o bilingsgate-dialect_n loc._n angeli_fw-la ponuntur_fw-la in_o extimo_fw-la ambitu_fw-la grot._fw-la in_o loc._n 2._o this_o construction_n of_o the_o word_n be_v not_o new_a their_o admire_a grotius_n say_v that_o the_o angel_n be_v in_o the_o remote_a place_n so_o do_v several_a other_o and_o it_o seem_v agreeable_a with_o their_o office_n of_o guard_v the_o church_n psal_n 34.7_o where_o then_o be_v the_o dishonesty_n and_o insincerity_n of_o manage_v this_o argument_n be_v it_o in_o say_v that_o the_o inference_n be_v more_o natural_a that_o presbyter_n be_v more_o honourable_a than_o bishop_n if_o angel_n be_v bishop_n why_o do_v he_o not_o disprove_v this_o inference_n j._n o._n do_v not_o urge_v this_o scripture_n as_o a_o conclude_a argument_n but_o to_o show_v the_o weakness_n of_o the_o argument_n for_o the_o superiority_n of_o bishop_n they_o be_v angel_n therefore_o they_o be_v superior_a to_o presbyter_n i_o say_v still_o j._n oh_o inference_n be_v much_o more_o natural_a if_o bishop_n be_v angel_n and_o angel_n be_v remote_a from_o the_o throne_n of_o christ_n than_o elder_n elder_n be_v more_o honourable_a than_o bishop_n so_o then_o j._n o._n have_v manage_v this_o argument_n honest_o and_o sincere_o for_o any_o thing_n the_o rector_n have_v say_v to_o the_o contrary_n i_o will_v wish_v he_o to_o consult_v the_o honour_n of_o his_o profession_n a_o little_a better_o than_o to_o perform_v his_o rash_a promise_n of_o renounce_v henceforward_o all_o pretence_n to_o those_o scurvy_a piece_n of_o morality_n as_o he_o scurvy_o call_v they_o his_o casuist_n will_v tell_v he_o that_o a_o immoral_a promise_n be_v better_a break_v than_o keep_v it_o will_v raise_v one_o stomach_n to_o see_v he_o compare_v timothy_n
with_o judas_n it_o be_v no_o more_o impossible_a say_v he_o that_o timothy_n shall_v leave_v his_o first_o love_n rev._n 2.2_o than_o that_o judas_n the_o apostle_n shall_v betray_v his_o master_n 162._o p._n 162._o we_o must_v not_o think_v but_o that_o some_o of_o the_o apostle_n friend_n and_o disciple_n make_v shipwreck_n of_o the_o faith_n alexander_n do_v so_o act_v 19.33_o and_o why_o not_o timothy_n so_o do_v demas_n the_o apostle_n say_v of_o timothy_n there_o be_v no_o man_n like-minded_n phil._n 2.20_o 22._o and_o that_o there_o be_v prophecy_n concern_v he_o that_o he_o shall_v war_n a_o good_a warfare_n 1_o tim._n 1.18_o can_v any_o such_o thing_n be_v say_v of_o judas_n we_o say_v comparison_n be_v odious_a be_v there_o ever_o a_o more_o odious_a one_o than_o to_o compare_v one_o of_o the_o most_o excellent_a new_a testament_n saint_n with_o the_o vile_a of_o hypocrite_n i_o will_v refer_v he_o to_o his_o own_o word_n if_o it_o be_v not_o offensive_a to_o he_o to_o review_v they_o critic_n will_v be_v busy_a and_o advance_v paradox_n and_o who_o can_v help_v it_o 163._o p._n 163._o timothy_n shall_v be_v a_o apostate-bishop_n rather_o than_o no_o bishop_n but_o he_o think_v to_o mend_v the_o matter_n by_o suppose_v timothy_n may_v be_v dead_a when_o the_o revelation_n be_v write_v because_o he_o be_v a_o infirm_a man_n 1_o tim._n 5.23_o and_o will_v scarce_o live_v to_o seventy_o year_n we_o have_v know_v infirm_a man_n that_o be_v temperate_a to_o live_v above_o seventy_o j._n o._n observe_v that_o many_o chronologer_n affirm_v that_o timothy_n be_v alive_a then_o this_o he_o overlook_v j._n o._n show_v out_o of_o dr._n lightfoot_n that_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n be_v a_o parish-bishop_n in_o conformity_n to_o the_o jewish_a synagogue_n each_o of_o which_o have_v its_o angel_n or_o bishop_n our_o author_n here_o enter_v the_o list_n with_o dr._n lightfoot_n not_o with_o j._n o._n he_o have_v not_o show_v we_o say_v he_o 165._o p._n 164_o 165._o that_o every_o synagogue_n have_v a_o presbytery_n let_v he_o consult_v dr._n lightf_n vol._n 1._o p._n 302._o &_o p._n 611._o &_o vol._n ii_o p._n 133._o but_o the_o ruler_n of_o the_o synagogue_n add_v he_o 165._o p._n 165._o be_v subject_a to_o the_o high-priest_n and_o their_o presbytery_n so_o be_v the_o presbyter_n to_o jesus_n christ_n our_o great_a highpriest_n and_o to_o all_o ruler_n of_o his_o appointment_n he_o tell_v we_o above_o that_o the_o highpriest_n and_o presbytery_n be_v the_o chief_a court_n of_o judicature_n among_o the_o jew_n and_o have_v the_o high_a jurisdiction_n and_o so_o it_o have_v in_o thing_n civil_a and_o sacred_a what_o be_v this_o to_o episcopal_a power_n over_o the_o presbyter_n let_v the_o bishop_n produce_v as_o clear_v a_o charter_n for_o their_o order_n as_o the_o high_a priest_n do_v for_o they_o and_o we_o will_v submit_v he_o remember_v mr._n bois_n scoff_v at_o the_o bishop_n of_o l._n for_o argue_v with_o dr._n lightfoot_n 166._o p._n 166._o but_o do_v not_o refer_v to_o the_o place_n lest_o we_o shall_v see_v what_o great_a reason_n mr._n b._n may_v have_v to_o reject_v rabbinical_a tradition_n and_o what_o little_a reason_n our_o author_n have_v to_o charge_v he_o with_o scoff_v when_o rabbinical_a learning_n be_v of_o any_o advantage_n we_o be_v content_a to_o make_v use_n of_o it_o if_o against_o we_o 167_o p._n 167_o we_o deride_v it_o say_v he_o when_o it_o be_v against_o the_o truth_n we_o reject_v it_o when_o there_o be_v a_o harmony_n between_o it_o and_o the_o new_a testament_n we_o receive_v it_o not_o for_o confirmation_n of_o divine_a truth_n but_o for_o illustration_n mr._n g._n can_v deny_v but_o the_o minister_n of_o every_o synagogue_n be_v call_v the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n and_o bishop_n of_o the_o congregation_n as_o dr._n lightfoot_n have_v prove_v therefore_o it_o look_v high_o rational_a that_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o asian_a church_n shall_v be_v so_o call_v in_o allusion_n to_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o synagogue_n christian_n oratory_n be_v call_v synagogue_n james_n 2.2_o our_o author_n can_v deny_v the_o agreement_n in_o many_o thing_n between_o both_o but_o say_v he_o the_o temple-worship_n whereof_o a_o great_a deal_n be_v moral_a be_v as_o much_o the_o pattern_n of_o the_o christian_a as_o be_v the_o synagogue-worship_n and_o if_o so_o the_o jewish_a priesthood_n be_v the_o pattern_n of_o the_o christian_a hierarchy_n p._n 166._o 1._o the_o jewish_a priesthood_n be_v appropriate_v to_o the_o ceremonial_a worship_n of_o the_o temple_n though_o they_o perform_v the_o moral_a part_n there_o also_o the_o legal_a priest_n and_o the_o legal_a altar_n be_v relate_v heb._n 7.13_o 14._o and_o both_o be_v abolish_v together_o heb._n 7.12_o for_o the_o priesthood_n be_v change_v there_o be_v make_v of_o necessity_n a_o change_n also_o of_o the_o law_n what_o law_n not_o that_o which_o concern_v the_o moral_a worship_n but_o the_o law_n of_o ceremony_n to_o which_o the_o levitical_a priesthood_n be_v adapt_v 2._o the_o moral_a worship_n in_o the_o synagogue_n may_v be_v perform_v by_o such_o as_o be_v no_o priest_n 135._o priest_n lightf_n vol._n ii_o p._n 133_o 134_o 135._o but_o none_o but_o priest_n give_v attendance_n at_o the_o altar_n heb._n 7.13_o therefore_o the_o ceremonial_a worship_n temple_n and_o priesthood_n be_v abolish_v and_o the_o moral_a worship_n which_o be_v the_o only_a synagogue-worship_n be_v transplant_v into_o the_o christian_a church_n it_o follow_v that_o the_o jewish_a priesthood_n be_v no_o pattern_n of_o the_o gospel-ministry_n but_o this_o have_v be_v consider_v before_o j._n oh_o first_o instance_n of_o ordination_n by_o presbyter_n from_o act_n 13.1_o 2_o 3._o have_v be_v sufficient_o vindicate_v above_o cap._n 2._o he_o be_v in_o one_o of_o his_o hot_a fit_n again_o 168._o p._n 168._o and_o charge_n j._n o._n with_o insufferable_a artifice_n fallacy_n sophistry_n etc._n etc._n for_o say_v that_o if_o barnabas_n be_v one_o of_o the_o seventy_o disciple_n as_o the_o ancient_n affirm_v he_o be_v then_o be_v he_o of_o the_o order_n of_o presbyter_n according_a to_o that_o hypothesis_n that_o make_v bishop_n to_o succeed_v the_o twelve_o apostle_n and_o presbyter_n the_o seventy_o disciple_n j._n o._n do_v not_o call_v barnabas_n a_o presbyter_n but_o argue_v ad_fw-la bominem_fw-la he_o may_v as_o well_o have_v affirm_v say_v he_o that_o mathias_n another_o of_o the_o seventy_o be_v but_o a_o presbyter_n who_o succeed_v judas_n we_o read_v of_o mathias_n his_o solemn_a call_n to_o the_o apostleship_n and_o that_o he_o be_v number_v with_o the_o eleven_o act_v 1.26_o but_o we_o have_v not_o the_o like_a account_n of_o barnabas_n it_o be_v true_a he_o be_v call_v a_o apostle_n act_v 14.4.14_o so_o be_v evangelist_n sometime_o as_o we_o prove_v before_o many_o conceive_v he_o be_v but_o a_o evangelist_n paul_n seem_v to_o own_v no_o apostle_n in_o a_o strict_a sense_n but_o the_o twelve_o and_z himself_o 1_o cor._n 15.5_o 7_o 8._o it_o be_v the_o prerogative_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o confer_v the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o we_o do_v not_o find_v that_o barnabas_n ever_o confer_v that_o gift_n though_o i_o will_v not_o be_v positive_a but_o he_o may_v be_v a_o real_a apostle_n j._n o._n argue_v that_o those_o who_o have_v power_n to_o dispense_v the_o gospel_n to_o baptise_v and_o administer_v the_o lord_n supper_n have_v also_o power_n of_o ordination_n because_o these_o be_v ordinance_n not_o inferior_a to_o ordination_n et_fw-la parium_fw-la par_fw-fr est_fw-la ratio_fw-la they_o be_v not_o inferior_a to_o ordination_n 1._o preach_v the_o gospel_n be_v not_o inferior_a to_o ordination_n the_o publisher_n of_o it_o be_v ambassador_n for_o christ_n 2_o cor._n 5.20_o represent_v the_o great_a prophet_n of_o the_o church_n mat._n 5.20_o be_v worker_n together_o with_o god_n 2_o cor._n 6.1_o and_o be_v a_o ordainer_n morethan_fw-ge this_o baptism_n be_v our_o solemn_a dedication_n to_o god_n ordination_n be_v no_o more_o only_o the_o former_a be_v to_o christianity_n as_o such_o the_o latter_a to_o a_o particular_a work_n 2._o baptism_n be_v a_o sacramental_a dedication_n which_o ordination_n be_v not_o 3._o in_o the_o lord_n supper_n the_o minister_n set_v apart_o bread_n and_o wine_n as_o symbolical_a representation_n of_o jesus_n christ_n jerom_n say_v of_o presbyter_n ad_fw-la quorum_fw-la preces_fw-la corpus_fw-la &_o sanguis_fw-la christi_fw-la consicitur_fw-la now_o which_o be_v great_a to_o impose_v hand_n or_o to_o make_v the_o sacramental_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n if_o they_o have_v power_n to_o consecrate_v holy_a thing_n why_o not_o holy_a person_n also_o thus_o j._n o._n who_o prove_v also_o that_o the_o ministerial_a act_n now_o mention_v be_v not_o inferior_a to_o ordination_n from_o 1_o cor._n 1.17_o mat._n 28.19_o 20._o
what_o can_v our_o author_n say_v to_o this_o instead_o of_o answer_v j._n oh_o 170._o p._n 170._o argument_n he_o say_v he_o know_v not_o by_o what_o authority_n j._n o._n have_v enter_v into_o the_o comparison_n his_o scripture-reason_n be_v his_o authority_n which_o mr._n g._n have_v not_o touch_v only_o he_o nibble_v at_o 1_o cor._n 1.17_o which_o be_v a_o text_n say_v he_o that_o few_o understand_v but_o at_o length_n he_o give_v the_o meaning_n of_o it_o paul_n main_a work_n say_v he_o be_v to_o preach_v not_o to_o baptise_v 171._o p._n 171._o if_o preach_v be_v his_o main_a work_n it_o be_v not_o inferior_a to_o ordination_n it_o do_v not_o hence_o follow_v that_o preach_v be_v a_o more_o honourable_a office_n than_o baptise_v 172._o p._n 172._o say_v the_o rector_n none_o ever_o affirm_v the_o office_n to_o be_v more_o honourable_a for_o the_o office_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o preach_v and_o baptise_v be_v act_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o office_n the_o apostle_n seem_v to_o prefer_v the_o work_n of_o preach_v before_o that_o of_o baptise_v so_o do_v christ_n also_o who_o preach_v himself_o but_o commit_v the_o work_n of_o baptise_v to_o his_o disciple_n john_n 4.2_o though_o he_o blame_v j._n o._n for_o compare_v ministerial_a act_n yet_o he_o can_v forbear_v do_v it_o himself_o ordain_v say_v he_o be_v a_o high_a ministerial_a act_n than_o baptise_v 173._o p._n 173._o turpe_fw-la est_fw-la doctori_fw-la cùm_fw-la culpa_fw-la redarguit_fw-la ipsum_fw-la j._n o._n think_v christ_n mention_v the_o chief_a part_n of_o a_o minister_n work_n in_o mat._n 28.19_o 20._o go_v teach_v baptise_v etc._n etc._n if_o ordination_n have_v be_v the_o main_a and_o chief_a part_n of_o the_o apostle_n commission_n he_o will_v have_v say_v go_v ordain_v preach_v baptise_v etc._n etc._n ordination_n therefore_o be_v not_o the_o principal_a part_n of_o a_o minister_n office_n but_o rather_o subordinate_a to_o preach_v and_o baptise_v and_o include_v here_o as_o the_o lesser_a in_o the_o great_a a_o commission_n usual_o specify_v the_o principal_a act_n which_o one_o be_v impower_v to_o do_v and_o do_v not_o run_v à_fw-fr minori_fw-la ad_fw-la majus_fw-la mr._n g._n take_v no_o notice_n of_o j._n oh_o argument_n but_o pretend_v that_o the_o reason_n why_o the_o lord_n supper_n ibid._n ibid._n and_o ordination_n be_v not_o mention_v in_o mat._n 28.19_o 20._o be_v because_o they_o be_v mention_v before_o luke_n 22.19_o john_n 20.21_o so_o teach_v and_o baptise_v be_v mention_v before_o and_o practise_v by_o the_o apostle_n christ_n give_v they_o no_o new_a commission_n at_o this_o time_n only_o enlarge_v their_o former_a commission_n they_o teach_v and_o baptise_a before_o but_o in_o one_o nation_n only_o now_o they_o be_v send_v to_o all_o nation_n it_o be_v agree_v that_o mat._n 28.19_o 20._o contain_v the_o commission_n not_o only_o of_o the_o apostle_n but_o of_o their_o successor_n to_o the_o end_n of_o time_n for_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n v._o 20._o i_o be_o with_o you_o always_o even_o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n amen_n either_o this_o commission_n do_v empower_v they_o to_o ordain_v successor_n in_o the_o ordinary_a part_n of_o their_o ministry_n or_o it_o do_v not_o if_o it_o do_v not_o it_o be_v imperfect_a and_o insufficient_a for_o the_o continuance_n of_o a_o gospel-ministry_n unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n in_o pursuance_n of_o the_o promise_v make_v to_o that_o end_n v._o 20._o ordination_n be_v not_o mention_v in_o john_n 20.21_o and_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v imply_v in_o mat._n 28.19_o 20._o as_o a_o necessary_a mean_n for_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o church_n unto_o the_o end_n of_o time_n if_o this_o commission_n in_o mat._n 28.19_o 20._o do_v empower_v the_o apostle_n to_o ordain_v as_o doubtless_o it_o do_v than_o the_o ordain_v power_n must_v be_v include_v in_o teach_v and_o baptise_v as_o subordinate_a and_o subservient_fw-fr to_o they_o he_o say_v the_o power_n of_o confer_v other_o power_n 174._o p._n 174._o be_v great_a than_o those_o other_o power_n john_n 13.16_o if_o this_o be_v true_a the_o bishop_n who_o make_v a_o archbishop_n be_v great_a than_o he_o and_o those_o who_o consecrate_v the_o pope_n be_v great_a than_o the_o pope_n john_n 13.16_o do_v not_o speak_v of_o ordination_n all_o that_o can_v be_v gather_v from_o it_o be_v that_o we_o shall_v learn_v humility_n of_o jesus_n christ_n who_o be_v our_o lord_n and_o master_n john_n 13.13_o 14_o 15_o 16._o inferior_n often_o confer_v superior_a power_n bishop_n do_v crown_n king_n a_o recorder_n or_o town-clerk_n may_v swear_v a_o mayor_n it_o be_v endless_a to_o follow_v our_o author_n in_o all_o his_o undidigested_a notion_n and_o yet_o i_o can_v but_o touch_v on_o they_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o the_o less_o judicious_a reader_n who_o expect_v his_o book_n answer_v paragraph_n by_o paragraph_n he_o affirm_v but_o can_v prove_v that_o the_o apostle_n reserve_v ordination_n to_o themselves_o 175._o p._n 175._o we_o have_v prove_v the_o contrary_a already_o he_o ask_v with_o what_o effrontery_n dare_v j._n o_o call_v peter_n lombard_n to_o his_o assistance_n ibid._n ibid._n who_o say_v the_o ancient_n argue_v from_o baptism_n to_o ordination_n lomb._n lib._n 4._o dist_n 25._o i_o have_v answer_v this_o already_o in_o short_a the_o testimony_n of_o a_o adversary_n be_v valid_a against_o himself_o he_o acknowledge_v that_o if_o the_o ordain_v power_n do_v by_o scripture-charter_n belong_v to_o the_o presbyter_n 176._o p._n 176._o then_o to_o pretend_v to_o deprive_v they_o of_o it_o be_v a_o nullity_n i_o have_v prove_v that_o it_o do_v belong_v to_o they_o by_o scripture-charter_n and_o therefore_o his_o instance_n of_o a_o presbyter_n baptise_v a_o believer_n who_o have_v no_o power_n to_o baptise_v another_o be_v not_o to_o the_o purpose_n he_o have_v often_o profess_v that_o he_o will_v not_o trace_v j._n o._n through_o the_o father_n and_o ancient_a writer_n so_o he_o do_v p._n 122._o and_o p._n 175._o and_o yet_o as_o a_o man_n who_o be_v no_o slave_n to_o his_o word_n he_o will_v needs_o be_v nibble_v at_o antiquity_n where_o he_o think_v he_o have_v any_o advantage_n so_o he_o do_v p._n 116._o and_o p._n 119._o and_o in_o the_o conclude_a page_n of_o his_o book_n he_o make_v a_o long_a stride_n from_o p._n 58._o of_o j._n oh_o plea_n 188._o p._n 177_o 188._o to_o p._n 179._o and_o there_o he_o pick_v quarrel_n with_o two_o quotation_n of_o he_o which_o show_v the_o presbyter_n to_o succeed_v the_o apostle_n as_o much_o as_o the_o bishop_n he_o skip_v over_o but_o 120_o page_n of_o j._n oh_o book_n and_o yet_o will_v persuade_v the_o world_n he_o have_v answer_v it_o suppose_v i_o have_v do_v so_o by_o his_o book_n which_o i_o have_v answer_v in_o all_o that_o be_v material_a paragraph_n by_o paragraph_n will_v not_o some_o people_n be_v tempt_v to_o think_v it_o unanswerable_a and_o that_o i_o undertake_v what_o i_o be_v not_o able_a to_o perform_v but_o to_o proceed_v to_o the_o remark_n on_o j._n oh_o quotation_n ignatius_n say_v that_o the_o presbyter_n succeed_v in_o the_o place_n of_o the_o bench_n of_o the_o apostle_n there_o be_v nothing_o more_o unfair_a say_v my_o author_n 178._o p._n 178._o than_o to_o misrepresent_v the_o mean_v of_o a_o author_n j._n o._n only_o quote_v the_o word_n without_o explication_n how_o then_o can_v he_o misrepresent_v the_o meaning_n but_o the_o meaning_n be_v as_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o presbyter_n be_v the_o bishop_n second_o as_o the_o apostle_n be_v jesus_n christ_n second_o our_o rector_n want_v a_o second_o to_o explain_v his_o explication_n it_o be_v so_o obscure_a and_o unintelligible_a i_o hope_v he_o will_v not_o make_v ignatius_n say_v that_o the_o bishop_n be_v as_o much_o the_o head_n of_o the_o presbyter_n as_o christ_n be_v of_o the_o apostle_n but_o let_v we_o hear_v ignatius_n himself_o i_o exhort_v you_o say_v he_o 33._o he_o ad_fw-la mag._n p._n 33._o do_v all_o your_o work_n in_o the_o concord_n of_o god_n the_o bishop_n preside_v in_o the_o place_n of_o god_n and_o the_o presbyter_n in_o the_o place_n of_o the_o bench_n or_o council_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o deacon_n who_o be_v precious_a to_o i_o to_o who_o be_v commit_v the_o ministry_n of_o jesus_n christ._n so_o in_o another_o place_n let_v all_o of_o you_o follow_v the_o bishop_n as_o jesus_n christ_n follow_v the_o father_n and_o follow_v the_o presbytery_n as_o the_o apostle_n and_o reverence_v the_o deacon_n as_o the_o command_n of_o god_n 6._o god_n ign._n ad_fw-la smyr_n p._n 6._o he_o say_v one_o bishop_n with_o the_o presbytery_n and_o the_o deacon_n and_o a_o little_a after_o he_o call_v the_o apostle_n the_o presbytery_n of_o the_o church_n 41._o church_n ad_fw-la phil._n p._n
41._o in_o another_o place_n reverence_n the_o deacon_n as_o the_o command_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o bishop_n as_o jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o presbyter_n as_o the_o council_n of_o god_n and_o the_o conjunction_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o a_o little_a before_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o presbytery_n as_o the_o apostle_n of_o jesus_n christ_n 48._o christ_n ad_fw-la tral_n p._n 48._o he_o speak_v more_o express_o a_o few_o page_n after_o be_v inseparable_o unite_v to_o god_n jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o bishop_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o the_o order_n of_o the_o apostle_n i._n e._n the_o presbyter_n 50._o presbyter_n ibid._n p._n 50._o i_o leave_v it_o to_o the_o impartial_a reader_n be_v judgement_n whether_o all_o these_o expression_n put_v together_o do_v not_o make_v it_o plain_a that_o the_o presbyter_n according_a to_o ignatius_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n can_v any_o thing_n be_v express_v with_o more_o clearness_n they_o preside_v in_o the_o place_n of_o the_o bench_n of_o the_o apostle_n they_o must_v be_v follow_v as_o the_o apostle_n reverence_v as_o the_o conjunction_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o as_o the_o order_n of_o apostle_n but_o our_o author_n proceed_v in_o his_o usual_a and_o proper_a style_n j._n o_o '_o s._n last_v disingenuous_a pervert_v the_o sense_n of_o ignatius_n 178._o p._n 178._o have_v put_v i_o say_v he_o upon_o the_o examination_n of_o his_o testimony_n out_o of_o irenaeus_n for_o i_o must_v confess_v i_o dare_v not_o trust_v he_o in_o any_o thing_n that_o he_o offer_v out_o of_o antiquity_n see_v the_o candour_n of_o this_o gentleman_n he_o decline_v j._n o_n testimony_n out_z of_o antiquity_n and_o yet_o turn_v over_o above_o a_o hundred_o page_n to_o search_v out_o one_o or_o two_o quotation_n that_o he_o may_v cavil_v at_o they_o have_v treat_v j._n o._n with_o such_o scornful_a and_o ill_a language_n so_o often_o in_o his_o book_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v expect_v he_o shall_v forbear_v bestow_v upon_o he_o some_o of_o his_o best_a compliment_n now_o at_o part_v and_o he_o be_v the_o more_o oblige_v to_o he_o for_o they_o because_o they_o be_v undeserved_a and_o be_v the_o free_a emanation_n of_o the_o rector_n good_a nature_n his_o attempt_n upon_o ignatius_n fail_v he_o he_o proceed_v to_o j._n oh_o second_o quotation_n out_o of_o irenaeus_n which_o be_v this_o cum_fw-la autem_fw-la ad_fw-la eam_fw-la iterum_fw-la traditionem_fw-la quae_fw-la est_fw-la ab_fw-la apostolis_n quae_fw-la per_fw-la successionem_fw-la presbyteriorum_fw-la in_o ecclesiis_fw-la custoditur_fw-la here_o he_o tax_v j._n o_o be_v sincerity_n for_o a_o literal_a fault_n of_o the_o printer_n 179._o p._n 179._o who_o instead_o of_o presbyterorum_fw-la print_v presbyteriorum_fw-la with_o the_o addition_n of_o the_o letter_n ay_o this_o will_v pass_v for_o a_o venial_a fault_n among_o friend_n but_o mr._n g._n be_v as_o severe_a a_o judge_n as_o he_o be_v a_o corrector_n of_o the_o press_n but_o say_v he_o j._n o._n like_o a_o man_n wise_a in_o his_o generation_n turn_v presbyter_n into_o presbytery_n ibid._n ibid._n that_o this_o place_n may_v be_v understand_v not_o of_o bishop_n but_o of_o the_o college_n of_o presbyter_n but_o irenaeus_n by_o presbyter_n mean_v bishop_n 1._o j._n o._n speak_v of_o presbyter_n not_o presbytery_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n and_o quote_v irenaeus_n for_o proof_n he_o do_v not_o use_v the_o word_n presbytery_n in_o all_o that_o argument_n p._n 179_o 180._o 2._o mr._n g._n can_v deny_v but_o irenaeus_n say_v the_o presbyter_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n but_o he_o think_v by_o presbyter_n he_o mean_v bishop_n we_o think_v so_o too_o and_o thence_o infer_v that_o presbyter_n and_o bishop_n be_v the_o same_o in_o irenaeus_n as_o they_o be_v in_o paul_n epistle_n he_o say_v in_o another_o place_n we_o must_v obey_v those_o presbyter_n that_o be_v in_o the_o church_n who_o receive_v their_o succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n as_o we_o have_v show_v who_o with_o the_o succession_n of_o their_o episcopacy_n have_v receive_v the_o certain_a grace_n of_o truth_n according_a to_o the_o father_n pleasure_n and_o a_o little_a after_o such_o presbyter_n the_o church_n nourish_v of_o who_o the_o prophet_n say_v i_o will_v give_v thou_o ruler_n in_o peace_n and_o bishop_n in_o righteousness_n 44._o righteousness_n iren._n ad_fw-la haeres_fw-la iv_o 43_o 44._o observe_v here_o 1._o that_o presbyter_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n 2._o presbyter_n have_v a_o episcopacy_n 3._o those_o who_o irenaeus_n call_v presbyter_n he_o call_v also_o bishop_n irenaeus_n his_o bishop_n be_v but_o the_o first_o presbyter_n as_o hilarius_n the_o roman_a deacon_n call_v he_o ephes_n he_o int._n ad_fw-la ephes_n by_o those_o first_o presbyter_n who_o for_o order_n sake_n have_v the_o precedency_n of_o the_o rest_n irenaeus_n and_o other_o derive_v the_o succession_n but_o the_o church_n be_v govern_v not_o by_o those_o single_a presbyter_n or_o bishop_n alone_o but_o by_o the_o college_n of_o presbyter_n in_o common_a among_o who_o the_o senior_a presbyter_n or_o the_o most_o worthy_a have_v the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o chief_a seat_n but_o without_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n over_o his_o brethren_n as_o the_o athenian_n reckon_v the_o year_n in_o which_o the_o archontes_n govern_v their_o republic_n by_o the_o first_o archon_n though_o there_o be_v nine_o of_o they_o in_o all_o and_o the_o lacedaemonian_n denominate_v the_o year_n of_o their_o ephori_fw-la who_o be_v five_o in_o all_o by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o first_o 38._o first_o vid._n blon_n apol._n pref._n p._n 38._o so_o the_o father_n derive_v the_o succession_n of_o presbyter_n by_o the_o first_o and_o chief_a presbyter_n to_o who_o the_o name_n of_o bishop_n by_o degree_n be_v appropriate_v thus_o we_o have_v vindicated_n ignatius_n and_o irenaeus_n against_o the_o angry_a exception_n of_o our_o author_n i_o will_v add_v one_o or_o two_o more_o but_o with_o no_o design_n to_o stir_v up_o his_o choler_n jerom_n say_v of_o they_o they_o the_o clergy_n succeed_v in_o the_o apostolical_a degree_n they_o make_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n with_o their_o sacred_a mouth_n and_o by_o they_o we_o be_v make_v christian_n he_o speak_v not_o of_o bishop_n but_o of_o the_o clerici_fw-la without_o distinction_n even_o of_o all_o that_o administer_v the_o eucharist_n and_o baptise_v and_o a_o little_a after_o express_o name_v the_o presbyter_n the_o presbyter_n say_v he_o may_v deliver_v i_o to_o satan_n if_o i_o offend_v heliodor_n offend_v hieron_n ep._n ad_fw-la heliodor_n origen_n in_o mat._n 16._o make_v all_o presbyter_n to_o succeed_v the_o apostle_n in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n prosper_n make_v all_o holy_a priest_n that_o conscientious_o discharge_v the_o duty_n of_o their_o office_n the_o successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n if_o the_o holy_a priest_n say_v he_o turn_v many_o to_o god_n by_o their_o holy_a live_n and_o preach_v who_o can_v doubt_v such_o to_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o contemplative_a virtue_n by_o who_o example_n and_o instruction_n many_o be_v make_v heir_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n these_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n the_o hearer_n of_o god_n the_o oracle_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n these_o be_v the_o successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n of_o the_o lord_n 25._o lord_n isti_fw-la sunt_fw-la apostolor_n domini_fw-la successores_fw-la prosp_n de_fw-fr vit._n con._n templ_n i._o 25._o the_o same_o be_v affirm_v by_o ambrose_n 1._o ambrose_n de_fw-fr dign_a sacerdot_n cap._n 1._o clave_n regni_fw-la coelorum_fw-la in_o beato_fw-la petro_n apostolo_n cuncti_fw-la suscepimus_fw-la sacerdotes_fw-la cyprian_a also_o speak_v to_o the_o same_o purpose_n christ_n say_v to_o the_o apostle_n and_o to_o all_o ecclesiastical_a ruler_n who_o by_o a_o depute_a ordination_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n he_o that_o hear_v you_o hear_v i_o and_o he_o that_o hear_v i_o hear_v he_o that_o send_v i_o lxix_o i_o dicit_fw-la ad_fw-la omnes_fw-la praepositos_fw-la qui_fw-la apostolis_n vicaria_fw-la ordinatione_fw-la succedunt_fw-la ep._n lxix_o i_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o cyprian_n call_v the_o bishop_n praepositi_fw-la church-ruler_n and_o speak_v here_o of_o himself_o who_o be_v a_o bishop_n but_o the_o word_n be_v general_a and_o must_v include_v the_o presbyter_n also_o 1._o because_o he_o say_v all_o the_o praepositi_fw-la succeed_v the_o apostle_n the_o presbyter_n as_o well_o as_o the_o bishop_n be_v the_o praepositi_fw-la in_o cyprian_a so_o he_o call_v they_o the_o lord_n choose_v the_o apostle_n that_o be_v the_o bishop_n and_o praepositos_fw-la xv._o praepositos_fw-la ep_a i._n xv._o ruler_n here_o cyprian_n call_v the_o presbyter_n praepositos_fw-la and_o he_o make_v the_o bishop_n and_o the_o praepositi_fw-la equal_o to_o succeed_v the_o apostle_n 2._o he_o say_v all_o the_o praepositi_fw-la succeed_v the_o apostle_n to_o who_o christ_n say_v he_o that_o hear_v you_o hear_v me._n now_o these_o word_n of_o christ_n belong_v to_o the_o presbyter_n as_o much_o as_o to_o the_o bishop_n he_o that_o hear_v they_o hear_v christ_n therefore_o these_o word_n be_v speak_v to_o they_o also_o as_o the_o apostle_n successor_n according_a to_o cyprian_a and_o this_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o 1_o pet._n 5.1_o where_o the_o apostle_n peter_n write_v to_o to_o presbyter_n call_v himself_o a_o presbyter_n have_v the_o apostle_n write_v thus_o the_o bishop_n which_o be_v among_o you_o i_o exhort_v who_o be_o also_o a_o bishop_n this_o will_v have_v be_v cry_v up_o for_o a_o invincible_a argument_n to_o prove_v that_o bishop_n be_v the_o apostle_n successor_n for_o he_o write_v to_o bishop_n and_o call_v himself_o a_o bishop_n the_o argument_n be_v we_o to_o prove_v that_o presbyter_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n who_o style_v themselves_o presbyter_n in_o the_o ordinary_a part_n of_o their_o office_n we_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o the_o bishop_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n but_o as_o presbyter_n and_o not_o as_o a_o order_n of_o church-officer_n superior_a to_o presbyter_n and_o therefore_o irenaeus_n as_o we_o observe_v before_o say_v the_o presbyter_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n make_v presbyter_n and_o bishop_n to_o be_v the_o same_o according_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n i_o have_v already_o prove_v that_o the_o presbyter_n of_o ephesus_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n in_o the_o government_n of_o that_o church_n timothy_n be_v leave_v there_o in_o paul_n absence_n when_o he_o intend_v to_o come_v to_o ephesus_n himself_o short_o 1_o tim._n 3.14_o &_o 4.13_o the_o presbyter_n be_v entrust_v with_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n when_o he_o have_v no_o thought_n of_o see_v they_o again_o act_v 20.25.38_o timothy_n a_o evangelist_n be_v to_o supply_v the_o temporary_a absence_n of_o paul_n from_o that_o church_n the_o presbyter_n his_o perpetual_a absence_n and_o therefore_o be_v proper_o his_o successor_n in_o the_o government_n of_o that_o church_n finis_fw-la